Tempting My Mafia Boss
Tempting My Mafia Boss
Tempting My Mafia Boss
Title Page
Copyright
Dedication
Letter to my Readers
Playlist
Playlist
Prologue
Olivia Bennett…I Mean Jones
Interview from hell
The Underboss
A Tempting Offer
Playing With Fire
Me, Tease Him?
You’re Wet
A Mother’s Mission
A Dinner Affair
Who Is the Real Giovanni?
Alone
Think About Ice Cream
Love is Tragedy
The Darkness Within
Filthy Fantasies
Meddling Mamma
Colourful Background
A Proposal
Giving In To Sin
Free
A Warm Welcome
Peeping Olivia
Disaster Date
Dr Jekyll And Mr Hyde
An Unlucky Man
Unforgettable
Locked Away
Dreams
Know You Better
Twister
Breaking Down Barriers
Demon Or Saviour?
Don't Be Late
Best Behaviour
Lose Your Panties
I've Got You
Her
Nightmares and Monsters
Snow Plough
Control
Turning Tables
Hot Tub
Vinny
Countdown
Are you home yet?
Imposter
Dangerous Dilemmas
Strategizing
The Boss
Camilla Aiani
The Truth
Confessions
Confessions Part 2
Protector
No More Tears
Maze Of Secrets
Goddammit
Saying Goodbye
Rabbits
Belle of the Ball
Run
A Final Farewell
Bit Of An A-hole
Love Knows No Bounds
Awakening A Monster
Heaven
Maxilla
No More Secrets
Stand By Your Man
Reward
The Alliance
A Shocking Turn of Events
Past Mistakes
Deep Dive
Sugar And Salt
More Than You Know
Sweet Love
Bound To Revenge
The Commission
A Close Encounter
Innocent Murder
A Wedding or a Funeral?
Hidden in plain sight
Veil of Betrayal
The Devil’s Deceit
Unhinged
Broken People Fix Each Other
Him and I
So Much Better
Coming soon…
About The Author
Tempting My Mafia Boss
Aura Rose
Copyright © 2022 Aura Rose
All rights reserved.
This book or any portion thereof may not be reproduced or used in any manner without the express written permission of the
author except for the use of brief quotations in a book review.
This is a work of fiction. Names, characters, places, events and incidents are products of the authors imagination. There may be
some references to real places but any resemblance to actual persons, living or dead, and actual events is purely coincidental.
ISBN: 9798833687017
For Aurawrites mob (my crazy ladies) and my spicy girls for supporting my dreams and being the best cheerleaders a girl could
ask for.
Contents
Title Page
Copyright
Dedication
Letter to my Readers
Playlist
Playlist
Prologue
Olivia Bennett…I Mean Jones
Interview from hell
The Underboss
A Tempting Offer
Playing With Fire
Me, Tease Him?
You’re Wet
A Mother’s Mission
A Dinner Affair
Who Is the Real Giovanni?
Alone
Think About Ice Cream
Love is Tragedy
The Darkness Within
Filthy Fantasies
Meddling Mamma
Colourful Background
A Proposal
Giving In To Sin
Free
A Warm Welcome
Peeping Olivia
Disaster Date
Dr Jekyll And Mr Hyde
An Unlucky Man
Unforgettable
Locked Away
Dreams
Know You Better
Twister
Breaking Down Barriers
Demon Or Saviour?
Don't Be Late
Best Behaviour
Lose Your Panties
I've Got You
Her
Nightmares and Monsters
Snow Plough
Control
Turning Tables
Hot Tub
Vinny
Countdown
Are you home yet?
Imposter
Dangerous Dilemmas
Strategizing
The Boss
Camilla Aiani
The Truth
Confessions
Confessions Part 2
Protector
No More Tears
Maze Of Secrets
Goddammit
Saying Goodbye
Rabbits
Belle of the Ball
Run
A Final Farewell
Bit Of An A-hole
Love Knows No Bounds
Awakening A Monster
Heaven
Maxilla
No More Secrets
Stand By Your Man
Reward
The Alliance
A Shocking Turn of Events
Past Mistakes
Deep Dive
Sugar And Salt
More Than You Know
Sweet Love
Bound To Revenge
The Commission
A Close Encounter
Innocent Murder
A Wedding or a Funeral?
Hidden in plain sight
Veil of Betrayal
The Devil’s Deceit
Unhinged
Broken People Fix Each Other
Him and I
So Much Better
Coming soon…
About The Author
Letter to my Readers
Dear Reader,
Thank you so much for purchasing this eBook- I hope you enjoy it as much as I enjoyed
writing it.
I think I have felt more emotionally invested in the characters from Tempting My Mafia
Boss than my previous books I’ve created. Perhaps it is because I wanted to use many of my
own personality traits in the female lead, Olivia or perhaps because I strongly connected
with the characters imperfections and struggles.
This story is a steamy romance with twists and turns and family drama, but it also touches
on a number of sensitive material and is suggested for those over 18. There is explicit
language and sexual scenes throughout.
I love to interact with my readers so please come and join me on social media for extra
content, mood boards on each character and upcoming projects. If you enjoy this book,
please follow me as an author and leave a review. It would mean the world to me as a new
author!
Lots of love,
Aura Rose x
@aurawrites31
Facebook.com/AuthorAurawritesReadersPage
Playlist
Flames by R3hab & Zayn (Ch: The Darkness Within)
Fantasies by (Ch: Filthy Fantasies)
Let me down slowly by Alec Benjamin ft Alessia (Confessions Part II)Princesses Don’t Cry
by CARYS (No More Tears)
One more light by Linkin Park (Broken People Fix Each Other)
Cecilia
I was squirting my perfume on when Elle waltzed into the room in her black, flowy ball
gown and sighed heavily before dropping onto the bed.
“Elenora! Sit up! You will crease that dress!”
“Mamma, I can’t stop thinking about this Liv and Gio situation. I feel terrible, as if I am
going through a breakup myself. Do you think they will figure it out?” she huffed.
“Yes. I believe they will. Olivia just needs some time to get her head around all of this. It
would have been a lot to just find out who we are but to find out that Gio was engaged and
he had done a background check on her was too much,” I replied sadly. I took out my
diamond necklace that Vinny had bought me for a special birthday and gestured for Elle to
come and clip it around my neck.
She dragged herself off the bed, her black hair curled over one shoulder and took it from
me. “I hope you are right. She told me about her stepbrother. At least Gio knows he needs to
protect her and is going out of his way to put his men on her watch.”
I frowned. “What do you mean? He is protecting her from the Leones. Gio said her
stepbrother was locked up in a hospital.”
Elle clipped the back and let it drop. She shook her head, her beautifully waxed eyebrows
furrowing. “No. She told me that he was dangerous and was looking for her. That’s why she
ran away from home. That’s why she is here.”
My eyes widened as I realised that Giovanni had no idea about this. Oh, Olivia is so much
more stubborn and head strong than I thought! Why hasn’t she told him?
“He doesn’t know?” Elle cottoned on quickly.
“No. But he needs to.” I slipped on my heels under my silver dress and made my way
towards the door.
“Mamma. Wait. Don’t you think Liv should be the one to tell him? You might make things
worse between them if she finds out he knows this too.”
I paused as I contemplated her words. She was right. But I also couldn’t allow that girl to
get herself killed out of stubbornness. She may not realise it, but she needed Gio just as
much as he needed her.
“It’s a risk I am willing to take if it means she will be safe.”
I lifted the bottom of my dress and made my way up to his floor. Walking past his office
towards his bedroom where I thought he would be getting ready, I paused when I heard
shuffling inside. Pushing the door open, I walked straight up to his desk where he was
leaning over paperwork, his shirt half undone, hair dishevelled and half a bottle of whiskey
empty on his desk.
“What are you doing?” I said sharply with frustration.
“What does it look like I am doing, mamma,” he replied tartly, causing my anger to flare.
“It looks like you are drinking yourself into oblivion while pretending to do work that can
wait. Why aren’t you ready? We have to leave in ten minutes.”
He gave a dismissive grunt and I exhaled deeply. “This is an important charity event and
you are required to show your face as the benefactor. It is the one good thing this family
does every year and you are not missing it.”
“I am not feeling in the most charitable mood,” he mumbled as he circled some area on a
map in front of him.
I sighed and walked over to his desk, taking the whiskey bottle away. He dropped his pen
and leaned back in the chair, glaring at me.
“There is something you need to know but I am not sure I should tell you when you are in
this state.”
“I am not in any state. I have only had a few glasses. What is it?” he grumbled. Wow, he was
in a terrible mood, but I guess I couldn’t blame him.
“Do you know the reason why Olivia came to Italy?”
His face screwed up in confusion at my question. “We were all there when she told us at the
dinner table.”
“That wasn’t the whole truth, Gio. Her stepbrother is after her. She is on the run.”
His dark eyes widened with fury and his jaw clenched. “That is not possible. He is locked
up.”
“You didn’t read all of the files, remember? Perhaps he has been released?”
He stood up slowly and I had never seen such a frightening look on his face before. It was a
red-hot solar flare of violent rage etched on his features. “Gio. Calm down. You have your
men watching her. She is safe right now.”
“How do you know this?” he gritted through his teeth.
“Olivia told Elle in France. Elle thought you knew.”
“Do you know what that man did to her? He sexually assaulted her, emotionally abused her
for two years and then stabbed her boyfriend in the back seven times while they were
having sex.” I gasped, my hand covering my mouth. That poor girl. I had no idea she had
been through such an ordeal. “And you are telling me now that he is out there and looking
for her?”
I could see in his eyes that he had entered a whole other level of darkness. I knew at that
moment that no matter what happened between him and Olivia, he would not stop until he
found her stepbrother and killed him. Most people would say I have screw loose to condone
my son for being a ruthless murderer, but in our world, it was the norm and, in this
situation, he had my blessing.
He pulled out his phone and dialled a number.
“Angelo. Dov'è Olivia?”
His eyes snapped up to mine as they grew wider. He listened intently to whatever Olivia’s
bodyguard was saying and a small, wicked grin played at the corners of his mouth. He hung
up and I raised my eyebrows at him, willing for him to tell me what was going on.
“Looks like I am going to the gala after all.” He stormed past me and raced towards his
bedroom.
“What?” I shouted after him.
“She is there,” he replied before he disappeared into his room.
I stood frozen on the landing. Well, this will be an interesting night, I am sure.
Run
Olivia
“I don’t get it! Why? Why put olives in a drink? Vile little things!” Joel pulled out the stick of
green olives from his drink and threw it on the table.
Gigi gave him a deep scowl as she picked it up and brushed the expensive silk tablecloth
that now had olive juice and an alcohol stain. I chuckled behind my glass of champagne at
the pair of them. They were total opposites, yet they worked so well together. Gigi liked the
finest things in life but didn’t have the means to back them up. She had that wholesome yet
fierce attitude where she would always strive for the best but enjoy what she had while she
had it. It was endearing. And Joel, well he just seemed to be all about having a good time.
Happy to be here but I expect he was happy to be anywhere. He didn’t take life too
seriously and just lived in the moment. I envied them both. They were so free.
“Ah shit. Bitch face is summoning me.” Gigi glanced over my shoulder at a stern-looking
woman dressed very elegantly with a Bluetooth device in her ear. I knew Gigi hated her
boss, but she put up with her because she knew pleasing her was the quickest way to the
top of their company. “Can I trust that you will be on your best behaviour? Liv, please keep
him in line!”
Joel feigned innocence and I giggled and nodded, waving her away. She dashed off, weaving
through the elaborately decorated tables in the grand ballroom. This was by far the most
extravagant event I had ever been to. It was stunning. I caught Joel watching Gigi saunter
away with a look of admiration in his eyes and when his gaze flickered at me, a slow,
knowing smirk spread across my face.
“What is that look for?” He arched one thick eyebrow up.
“What are your intentions with my friend Viking?” I hid my amusement and tried to keep a
straight face but the way his eyes crinkled and his face lit up made it hard.
“Viking aye? That’s sweet. Like my nickname. And as for your mate, lots of root,” he winked.
I sat forward, amused. “Lots of what? Root?”
“Sex.”
“Ah. So, you are the 'deny your feelings' type? Okay. That’s cool,” I shrugged. He narrowed
his eyes and smirked at me.
“Ya reckon?”
“Yeah. It takes a true man to be able to admit his feelings for a woman. I don’t hold it
against you, there’s not many of them left,” I teased, lifting my champagne glass to my lips
with a smile.
He nodded his head a few times. “Good on ya. Alright you got me. She’s a good girl.”
I smiled, knowing that was about as much of a confession as I would get out of this man.
Suddenly, my mind swarmed of Giovanni. I never actually found out how he really felt
about me. I guess I will never know. My mood sombered immediately as I stared around
the room at all these sophisticated and wealthy people. I can imagine that this is the type of
event the Buccinis come to all the time. I would never fit in with this world. I would always
feel inferior, as if I didn’t truly belong. Maybe sensing my sudden discomfort, Joel leaned
forward on the table.
“A bit stuffy, isn’t it? All this?” He whispered and I gave him a small smile and nod. “How
about we have some fun? Liven it up a little? You game?”
I raised an eyebrow at him. “I am supposed to be supervising you to make sure that doesn’t
happen,” I chuckled when he rolled his eyes and leaned his beefy body back in the chair. He
still looked funny to me wearing a tux.
“Come on! I won’t go crazy!” He peered over my shoulder and pointed behind me. “You see
the auctions over there? Let's go and put crazy bids on them under fake names.”
I burst out laughing as excitement danced in his eyes. That did sound quite fun. And it
would be better than sitting here thinking about Giovanni all night. “Fine. You are a terrible
influence.”
We stood up and I linked my arm with his as we strolled over to the table of contents that
was up for auction. As we approached it, I fought to keep a straight face as Joel put on a
terrible British accent and said, “Oh darling! Look here, a two-week vacation to the
Maldives. It has been two months since we last went. Shall I bid for us, my dear?”
“Oh no honey! Maldives is so overrated. I think I would prefer the superyacht.”
“Good choice. The five we already have are not enough,” he smirked as he leaned over the
table and picked up the pen. I tried to peer over his muscular shoulder to see what he was
writing.
$6,000,001 Mr Justin Sideher.
I slammed my hand over my mouth and had to turn my back to hide my laughter from the
man who was working behind the auction table. My laughter immediately died. Our eyes
met across the room. Suddenly, we were alone in the crowd. My heart hurtled into a frenzy
as neither one of us moved. Those chocolate brown eyes blazed with so many unsaid words
and emotions, and I felt as if I had fallen into an abyss, unable to find my way out. Giovanni.
What was he doing here?
I felt a strong hand slide around my shoulder and Joel’s fake British accent pulled me out of
my trance. “Your turn sweetheart. What are you going to bid on?” I almost jumped back
from him as I looked up at his smiling face. I opened and closed my mouth as my brain tried
to catch up with what was happening. I glanced back over at where I had seen Giovanni
standing on the other side of the room to check I hadn’t imagined it. But there he was.
Mouth-wateringly handsome in a tailored and intrinsically detailed wine-coloured suit and
black shirt open at the collar. I saw his dangerous eyes rake down my body and freeze on
Joel’s hand that was resting on my arm and his jaw clenched. He looked furious. No, he
looked deadly. Now I knew who he was and what he was capable of, panic rose in me as I
realised Joel was in danger just by being stood next to me. I turned quickly, my eyes wide
and Joel’s happy features changed to concern.
“You alright?”
“You need to go. No. I need to go,” I muttered as I turned to walk away from him quickly. He
grabbed my wrist to stop me.
“Liv? You look really scared. What’s going on?”
I don’t know how he had made it across the room so fast, but in the blink of an eye,
Giovanni had grabbed Joel’s arm that was holding my wrist and twisted it behind his back,
pulling his body awkwardly into Giovanni’s chest. My eyes widened as Giovanni wrapped
his hand around Joel’s throat and growled in his ear. “Don’t you fucking touch her.”
“Giovanni! Let him go! Now!” I screamed, causing lots of people in close proximity to turn
around and stare at us. Gio’s menacing eyes locked with mine and I gulped. He must have
been able to see the fear on my face because he slowly released Joel and pushed him away.
Joel’s face was full of icy fury as he charged towards Giovanni and I jumped in between
them both. Even though I was sure Joel was more than capable of winning a fight, he had no
idea who he was taking on.
“Joel! No. Stop. This is a misunderstanding. Please.” Joel stopped his rampage but kept his
angry glare over my head fixed on Giovanni. I had to get one of them away and I knew if I
walked off with Joel, it would only make everything ten times worse. Turning on the spot
quickly, I stepped towards the man that was making my body burn with anger and arousal
at the same time and pushed him away. His eyes were still locked in a death glare with
Joel’s, but as he felt my hands on his chest, pushing him back, he glanced down at me and
his face softened slightly.
He wrapped his arm around my waist and turned away, pulling me towards the dancefloor.
“What are you doing?” I hissed up at him but he ignored me and continued to drag me
along. Taking rapid steps in my heels to keep up with his pace, I looked around the room
and spotted Cecilia, Elle, his cousin I had met at dinner that time, and… that woman. She
was here. His fiancé? They were all watching us intensely with looks of worry on their
faces.
When we reached the middle of the dance floor, he pulled me into his chest forcefully,
wrapping one arm around my waist so tightly his fingers were digging into my skin and his
other took my hand. I glared up at him, unable to comprehend what he was doing.
“Are you fucking kidding me? You want to dance?”
He looked down at me and I recoiled slightly at the terrifying look on his face. His chiselled
features were rigid with pure rage and I could feel every muscle in his body was tense.
“Yes. Because I need to calm the fuck down before I commit a murder in front of all these
people. And holding you is the only thing that will calm me,” his voice was so deep and
grisly that my core tightened in response. Why? Why did seeing him like this… at his
worst…turn me on? Why wasn’t I running for the hills? What the fuck is wrong with me?
I didn’t say anything, just stared up at his strong jaw, perfect full lips and dark eyes. He had
the face of an angel but the mind of a killer. I allowed myself to become mesmerised by his
beauty one last time, tracing every curve to memory because after tonight, I will never see
him again.
After one song had ended and another started to play, I felt his hard, muscular body
relaxing slightly and his thumb started to caress my skin on the small of my back as we
moved slowly to the music. “Who was he?”
His voice was calmer now, but it still had an edge to it. I rolled my eyes and looked away
from him, my nostrils flaring. “Don’t roll your eyes at me bambola. Tell me who he is before
I lose my shit again.”
“He is a friend. Gigi’s boyfriend. So yes, once again, you lost your fucking head over a man
who did nothing wrong,” I snapped at him. Now it was my turn to be angry. This is how it
would be. Even if I could look past the crime, the violence, the betrayal. He would always be
this man. He would always try to own me. See me as his property. I was no one’s property
and he needed to understand that. “This is why we would never work, Giovanni. Forget
your job, your family, the fact that you are engaged to that woman over there. You see me
as something you own and I will never allow a man to control me like that.”
“I am not trying to control you, Liv. I am trying to protect you. Everything I do is to protect
you,” he growled down at me.
“And Joel? What were you protecting me from then?”
“He was stopping you from walking away. He had his hands on you,” he hissed, anger
flashing in his eyes again.
“And in France? The gay man I was dancing with? How were you protecting me then? Don’t
you ever stop to see how I am feeling in those moments. That I am happy and not looking to
be saved!” I argued. His jaw ticked as he realised I was seeing through his excuses. “Admit
it, Giovanni. You don’t act that way just because you are being protective!”
He snapped. He pulled me up against him so tightly that I could barely breathe. My lungs
felt like they were being crushed against his chest as he grabbed the back of my neck, so my
face was inches from his. “Fine. You want the truth. I hate it. I can’t stand it. I can’t see you
with another man. I can’t watch a man put his hands on you and not want to rip his fucking
head off. I am trying to be a better man for you but there are some things I just can’t fucking
tolerate.”
My lips parted as my heart drummed in my chest at being this close to him again, this
intimate. His eyes bore into mine in challenge and I held his gaze. “Then that is why this will
never work. Let me go. I am leaving.”
I pushed his chest as hard as I could and wriggled out of his embrace. Picking up the hem of
my emerald dress, I weaved and dodged my way through the crowds of people and tables
to make it to the door. I had to escape. I had to get out of here. I had to run.
A Final Farewell
Giovanni
She sped away from me in a flash of emerald and I raced after her. Her petite frame
squeezed through the throngs of people easily, while I was getting more and more
aggravated as people stepped in my way. Flying through the exit of the grand hall, I
searched the lobby frantically for any sign of her. The sway of green satin caught my eye as
it disappeared behind a door. Marching towards it, I yanked the door open and found
myself in a cloakroom with an array of guests' coats and jackets hanging on the rails and a
woman in a uniform standing behind the desk.
Her professional smile faded when she saw the look on my face. “Fuori. Adesso. (Out.
Now.)”
She scurried from the room just as Olivia stormed around the corner of the racks, halting
when she saw me. She looked so unbelievably gorgeous in that green dress that caressed
every inch of her beautiful body and her bright eyes and wavy hair that cascaded down her
back. She was too good for me, and I knew it. I didn’t deserve her. I will never be as good as
she deserves, but I can’t let her go. I would be as good as I was capable of. That had to be
enough.
My eyes travelled down to the handle in her hand and I froze. A suitcase? My eyes darted
back up to hers as she visibly gulped and then made a dash for the door. I blocked her way
and she stepped back, huffing angrily.
“Where are you going?” I growled, my voice harsh and demanding. I couldn’t help it. She
was trying to leave me.
“That is none of your business,” she hissed, attempting to get past me again. I grabbed the
suitcase out of her hands and she gasped when I threw it effortlessly across the room. It
landed with a thud on a rack of coats and her eyes narrowed and nostrils flared in anger.
“What the fuck?”
“Why didn’t you tell me?” I forced my voice to soften as I stepped towards her. She backed
away and stared up into my eyes.
“Tell you what?”
“About Henry? That he is out there and is looking for you?” Her stunning eyes widened, and
she looked away from me, the emotion causing her lip to tremble. “If he wants to get to you,
he will have to go through me first.”
“That is why I am leaving Giovanni! I cannot bring you into this or your family! It's not fair. I
have to keep moving, I am already putting your life in danger with the Leones and Henry is
coming. I can feel it. My demons are not yours to fix!” She shouted as she folded her arms
across her chest protectively.
“You are wrong, Liv. I would ruin myself to protect you.”
She peered up at me through her dark eyelashes, fresh tears brimming at the edges. “I
would never ask you to do that.”
“You don’t have to. Don’t you get it, Liv? If you were to simply whisper my name, I would
fall at your feet. I am intoxicated by you. You are everywhere. In every thought, in every
decision. Do you think I enjoy this? This infatuation? The constant need to know you are
safe. You can hurt me like nobody else ever can.” I grabbed her small face in my huge hands
and forced her to look into my eyes to see that I was baring my soul. A tear slipped down
her cheek.
“Then stop it! Stop caring about me. This will never end well for either of us. You are not
meant to be with me, you are meant to be with her. This is too messy! Just let me go!” She
cried, as she forced my hands off her face.
Something inside me snapped. Why couldn’t she let me in? Why couldn’t she see that I
would never let anything come between us?
“I CAN’T! You are killing me Liv! The fact that you think I could possibly let you go just
shows how oblivious you are about the power you have over me.”
Her eyes flashed with anger. “I am killing you? You are engaged to another woman,
Giovanni! And even if you don’t want to marry her, that doesn’t change the fact that you
must! I know what it means! I know by choosing me over her you will start a war of
families! I’ve done my research! I can't let you do that.”
“I really don’t give a shit Liv. If you ever think I will be able to look into anyone’s eyes the
way I get lost in yours or that I will feel even a fraction of the way I feel about you for her,
then you are a fucking fool!” I bellowed, losing my temper.
She scoffed, her eyes fierce. “So now you are insulting me?” She tried to walk away from me
and head for her suitcase but I pulled her back by her arm and pushed her against the wall.
“Yes, because you are being a stubborn ass bambola! Don’t run away. Stay with me,” I
demanded, my hard gaze burning into her eyes.
“Why should I?” she growled back, my body flushed against hers, pinning her to the wall.
She’s so mad at me right now but she looks so fucking hot that it is taking everything in me
not to kiss her senseless.
“Because you love me,” I husked against her lips. She pushed at my chest, forcing my lips
away from hers.
“I- I can’t do this. Don’t make this harder than it already is, Giovanni.” Her silent tears were
running down her face now and my heart felt like it was about to explode. I stared down at
her as if I could see into the depths of her very soul and she shook her head. “Please. Don’t
look at me like that.”
“Like what bambola?” I breathed, my chest brewing up and down in a slow rhythm, hands
on her hips, holding her in place.
“Like you fell in love with me,” she whispered.
“Maybe I did.”
“Stop it,” she bit back through her tears as her fists punched my chest. I let her take her
frustration out on my hard pecs for a few moments before I grabbed her wrists and held
them above her head against the wall.
“I will never stop Olivia. You are pushing me away because you are scared. You and I are it.
Stop running from the truth. I love you dammit. I FUCKING LOVE YOU!” I screamed in her
face. Her eyes widened and her lips parted. I saw my words break her. She gave in to her
weakness for me. Her ache for my lips, the longing for my body on hers. She couldn't resist
it no matter how hard she tried. I knew it because I felt it too. She was my weakness.
The hunger as her lips smashed against mine caused an explosion of emotions between us
as I released her wrists, and my hands roamed her body. She was tugging frantically at my
clothes, ripping them off me with so much need, as I grabbed at the length of her dress and
tore a slit up the side of it to allow me access to her pussy. My dick pulsed in my trousers. It
ached to be inside her. To claim her again. She had me under a spell, making me feel
incomplete without it. Our tongues were fighting with need as we devoured each other’s
mouths and I lifted her as she wrapped her legs around my ass, pulling my groin into hers.
From this position, all I had to do was unzip my fly and I’d be inside her in a heartbeat.
Using my free hand, I did just that. She gasped into my mouth as I filled her completely in
one powerful thrust.
It was too much, yet not enough. I had never felt like this before. Such intense passion and
desire to take every inch of her as my own out of fear. Fear of losing her. I moved my hips
back slowly only to push up into her again as she cried out against my lips. Moving faster
and harder, I pounded into her with all the intensity I felt. I groaned and moaned as she
clenched around me and raked her nails along my back as I buried my head in her neck and
kissed her skin. We both screamed out our orgasm so raw and full of emotion as I
shuddered inside her and panted heavily.
Her body was shaking against me violently and when I pulled my head back from her neck
to look at her, my heart shattered like glass in my chest. She was crying. She looked away
from me as I slowly slid out of her and lowered her to the floor. I reached my hand up to
wipe her tears but she moved away from me quickly.
I stood, confused and not able to comprehend what was happening as she grabbed her
suitcase and raced to the door.
“Liv?” I pleaded, genuinely not caring how pathetic I sounded.
She turned and looked back at me with so much sorrow. “I love you too, Giovanni. So much.
But I will destroy everything you have. That is why I have to let you go. I'm sorry.”
She ran out the door, suitcase in tow, and I stood frozen by her words. No. She thinks she
will be the death of me. She thinks I would be better off without her. She couldn’t be more
wrong. Grabbing my shirt from the floor, I raced out after her as I threw it on and started to
do up the buttons. My eyes darted around the lobby. I saw her walking out through the
revolving doors and sprinted through the luxury hotel lobby to get to her.
The cool evening breeze hit me as I ran as fast as I could towards her. She rushed down the
stone steps towards a taxi. “Olivia!” I shouted.
She turned as she reached the pavement and that’s when my acute senses took over.
Something wasn’t right. Her teary eyes locked with mine and her face creased with
confusion when she saw the genuine panic on my face. Everything that happened next was
as if the world stopped spinning and time slowed right down. I glanced to her right and saw
a homeless man who had been sitting on the floor, dropping his handmade, cardboard sign,
hand delving into his layers of clothing and producing a gun. Her gaze followed mine as she
turned and saw the man charging towards her, the gun rising up from his extended arm.
I charged down the stairs and dived through the air as I saw him take his aim. The trigger
clicked, the fire shot. I grabbed Liv’s body against mine as I turned my back to the hitman
and shielded her with my frame. The sudden pain was excruciating as I felt the bullet pierce
my skin and lodge inside my body. My eyes widened as I looked down at Liv who was
beneath me on the floor. I saw her mouth open and I knew she was screaming, but I
couldn’t hear a thing, with the ear-splitting ringing in my ears. I raised my hand to her face
and stroked her cheekbone with my thumb as the darkness crept upon me.
The last thing I saw were those terrified green eyes with gold speckles that I loved so much.
Bit Of An A-hole
Olivia
“Olivia!”
I turned to see Giovanni racing towards me but he paused momentarily as if he could sense
danger. His gorgeous features frowned deeply with worry as his eyes moved from me to my
right. I followed his gaze and saw a shabby looking homeless man dropping his sign and my
eyes widened when I saw he was holding a long, silver gun. His determined expression was
fixed on me and I knew I was his target. He stood up quickly, his arm extending as he
pointed the barrel directly at me.
My body froze and my heart stopped when I saw his finger on the trigger. I screwed my
eyes shut and braced myself for the impact of that metal bullet lodging itself in my flesh.
But it never came. Instead, I gasped because the air was compressed from my lungs by the
weight of a large, incredibly heavy man caging me to the stone floor. I opened my eyes and
peered up into Giovanni’s wide chocolate pupils that had dilated with pain. My heart felt
like it had been torn out of my chest as I realised that he had been shot. I screamed as I
watched his eyelids droop. He brushed my cheek with his thumb before his eyes closed
fully and his head fell onto my chest. Other gunshots were fired, and people were
screaming and running, but all I could do was cry out as the shock and despair rushed over
me. I tried to roll him off me to the floor as I cradled his head in my hands. I looked up and
saw another body on the floor. The homeless man. Angelo was racing towards us with his
gun in his hand.
“Help him! Angelo! Help!” I screamed as my tears fell on Gio’s lifeless face. Angelo rolled his
body to the side to look at the gunshot wound in his back and his face creased with
concern. He whipped off his suit jacket and pushed it against Gio’s back as I stroked his face
in my lap. Whimpering and pleading for him to wake up, I didn’t even hear the police and
ambulance sirens that came to the scene. As the paramedics came to his aid, I was pulled
away to give them space by Angelo’s muscular arms. I sobbed into his chest. He couldn't
die. This is happening again. I looked up when I heard a deafening wail of intense pain.
There, being held back by police officers was Cecilia and Elle, clawing to get to Gio’s body,
which was being lifted onto a stretcher, an oxygen mask over his face.
“Questo è mio figlio! Fammi passare!” Cecilia screamed again and again before the police
finally let her pass as Gio was lifted into the back of an ambulance. She climbed in and they
shut the door, before speeding away, the sirens blaring into the night.
“Olivia…Olivia what happened?” I glanced up and saw Maximus’ concerned and angry face
as his hands were on my shoulders. I looked down in a daze at my own hands and dress
that was covered in Gio’s blood and sunk to my knees on the stone floor.
I felt soft arms around my shoulders as Angelo spoke quickly in Italian to Maximus above
me. I moved my head to the side and saw the stunning face of Giovanni’s fiancé. Her blue
eyes were looking into mine with worry as she spoke to me, but I couldn’t hear anything
she said.
Maximus kneeled down next to her and I tried to focus on his lips that were moving. He was
talking to me.
“Liv. I know you are in shock but the police are going to come and talk to you in a minute. I
am going to ring our family lawyer. Don’t say a word until he gets there, okay? Do you
understand?”
“Giovanni…” I whimpered. “Is he…?” I couldn’t bring myself to say the words.
“No. He’s gone to the hospital. The doctors will do everything they can.”
“The man…” I looked over at the body that was now covered on the floor and police were
taping the crime scene off from the public. “Angelo shot him. He’s dead. When you speak to
the police you tell them that Angelo is Giovanni’s bodyguard. He has a licence for his gun.”
“Scusate? Signorina? We will give you a ride to the hospital once you have been checked by
a paramedic. We will need a statement from you.”
Max and Camilla helped me to my feet as the police officer blinked at me with a kind
expression. My body trembled as I nodded slowly. Maximus shrugged off his suit jacket and
placed it over my shoulders before Angelo and I followed the officer and climbed into the
police car.
∞∞∞
Sitting at a table in the warm but depressing meeting room in the hospital, I shivered as I
stared at my hands on the table. Even Max’s jacket was doing nothing to provide warmth to
my numb body. I recognised it as shock. It was how I felt five years ago, when I was dealing
with the aftermath of Nate’s death. Giovanni wasn’t dead. I kept repeating it over and over
in my head. I had no idea if it was true or not, but I couldn’t allow myself to think the worst.
I wouldn’t survive it.
The door opened and an older, short and stout Italian man in a stripy navy suit walked into
the room. His oval glasses perched on his bulbous nose and he gave me a small, reassuring
smile. “Miss Jones? My name is Alonzo and I am Buccini's lawyer. I am here to help you.”
I blinked twice. “Am I in trouble? Am I being arrested?” I panicked. I knew that was absurd.
I hadn’t done anything wrong, but just being here like this makes you feel guilty.
“No, no. They just want a statement. But don’t worry. I have requested a certain police
officer to interview you. That is why it is taking them longer to arrive. He knows the Buccini
family very well,” he gave me a knowing look and I nodded my head. So, they were all
corrupt. I had never been so relieved.
As Alonzo took a seat next to me, the door opened again and two police officers walked in.
One woman and one man. They smiled at me like I was a small child as they sat on the
opposite side of the table.
“Ciao. My name is Officer Haie and this is Officer Fabisona. Please state your name,” the
man said softly.
“Olivia Jones.”
“And in your own words, can you please tell us what happened tonight, Olivia?”
I looked over at Alonzo, who nodded, giving me permission to speak.
“I was leaving the gala and I was about to get in a taxi when…” I paused as I fought back
fresh tears. “When Giovanni called my name. He saw the man before I did. The homeless
man. He…he had a gun and he was aiming it at me. He was going to shoot me.”
The officers nodded and encouraged me to continue as I took a long, shaky breath. “I
thought I was going to die. But Giovanni dove in front of me. He…he got shot. He saved me.”
The tears rolled down my cheek and I brushed them away quickly.
“And when you say Giovanni? You mean Giovanni Buccini? The well-known entrepreneur?”
I glanced over at Alonzo again, who nodded. “Yes.”
“And what is your relationship with Mr Buccini?”
My eyes widened and my mouth opened but nothing came out. What was my relationship
with him? “I- we – it’s complicated.”
“Is this relevant information for the crime?” Alonzo asked and the female policewoman
glared at him.
“All information regarding a murder is important.”
My heart sped up at her words. “Murder? Is he dead? Is Giovanni dead?” I shouted, panic
consuming me.
“No. No, he is being operated on, as we speak. My colleague is talking about the murder of
Nicholas Grisle. The man who tried to shoot you.”
My eyes flared with anger. “That was not a murder. That was self-defence. Angelo works for
Giovanni as a bodyguard, and it is his job to protect him. He was only doing his job.”
“We are aware. But still one man has died and another is in a critical condition. We are just
trying to fit all the pieces together. So please answer the question. What is your
relationship with Mr Buccini?” the female officer, who was clearly not the corrupt one and
taking her job very seriously, asked again.
I thought quickly. If I needed to make this seem believable without revealing the true
reason as to why someone would want me dead, I had to think fast. I lifted my chin a little
higher.
“I am his girlfriend.”
The male policeman raised his eyebrows in surprise but kept quiet.
“And do you know of any reason as to why someone would want to harm you?”
I peered over at Alonzo, who looked a little worried. He was obviously hoping I would say
the right thing.
“Giovanni is always receiving death threats because of his businesses. Jealousy over his
wealth and power in the city. That is why he and his family have bodyguards. We tried to
keep our relationship a secret for that reason. So, no one could use me to get to him. But it
seems someone has found out.”
The officers scribbled everything I said down. “Do we know who he was, Nicholas Grisle?”
Alonzo asked.
The male officer looked at us with understanding. He knew that Alonzo was asking if this
was another mafia family. “He was exactly what he seemed to be. A homeless man who has
been living on the streets for many years. He was known to us for petty theft and small
crimes. It seems odd that he would do something like this. We will look into the matter
carefully.”
I nodded and glanced down at my green dress. Gio’s blood was now a dried stain on it. “Am
I free to go? I would like to go and see him now.”
The female officer went to speak but the male one beat her to it. “Yes, you are free to go. We
will contact you if we need any more information.”
“Thank you.” I stood up unsteadily on my feet and Alonzo took my arm, helping me out of
the room. As soon as we were outside, he turned to me with a beaming smile.
“You did well, Miss Jones. I think you will be very well suited to this life after all,” he
smirked as he guided me down the hospital corridors towards the waiting room. I
scrunched my face up in confusion as I wondered how he could possibly know about me.
Ah Maximus.
“I will take you to the family, but then I must get to the station to help Angelo.”
Love Knows No Bounds
Cecilia
The moment I saw my first born hooked up to all those machines and wires, the sobs broke
out of me once again. Knowing how close he came to losing his life had shaken me to the
core. No mother should ever have to go through the pain of losing a child. It also brought
back the gut-wrenching memories of losing Vinny the same way.
And all I felt was guilt. I did this. I pushed Olivia into his life. If he had never met her, this
never would have happened. He would never have risked his life like that for anyone else.
But he was his father's son and I would be a fool if I thought that he wouldn’t do it again.
I held his unresponsive hand as I stroked his black hair away from his eyes and stared
down at his beautiful face. He looked so peaceful.
“How long has it been going on, Cecilia and why wasn’t I aware?” Sal gritted behind me
after five minutes. I knew he was there, but thankfully he had given me a moment with my
son before his interrogation started.
“A few weeks.” I turned towards him as he glared at me with his muscular arms folded
across his chest. “And don’t you dare think about fucking this up for them, Sal! I meant it. I
will never forgive you.”
His jaw ticked as his dark eyes peered down at Giovanni’s sleeping form. “This is why
Cecilia. This is what I have tried to protect him from. He could have died! Just like Vin!”
I looked back down at my son as I nodded my head sadly. “Yes. He could have. But that was
his choice. As much as you want to control everyone, Sal, people have the right to make
their own choices.”
“Like you made yours,” his tone was low and laced with pain as my head whipped round to
him. His face had softened, and he held my gaze. I don’t know if it was the intense emotions
that were still in control of me or the situation, but I suddenly felt sorry for this man. I had
put him through a lot of pain over the years yet he still showed up when I needed him. He
gave me a sad smile before he ran his hand through his silver hair and walked towards the
window.
“If the Leones did this, they must pay.”
“Will it be enough?” I asked.
He stared out the slats of the blinds with a vacant expression. If we could get proof that the
Leones were behind this, then we could take the evidence to the commission and they
could give us the green light to seek revenge. We wouldn’t be allowed to kill them but we
could still do something that would cause a chink in their armour.
“No. I want Riccardo dead, CeCe. And his bastard son. I want them wiped out for what they
have done to this family.”
“I know. I want the same thing.”
Turning around, he fixed his gaze on mine. “Then we need an alliance with the Aianis.”
My eyes must have popped out of my head at his words because he rolled his eyes. “You
can’t be serious? When are you going to see what is right in front of you, Salvatore? Gio put
Olivia’s life before his own. He would never give her up. And you still want him to marry
that girl?”
“Yes. That is the deal and when I give my word, I mean it.”
“But it wasn’t your word to give!” I screamed, losing my temper. How can we still be going
around in these circles? If I didn’t stop this, everything would end in disaster. Either Sal and
Gio would be at loggerheads or Olivia would leave him. I stood up abruptly, not caring how
desperate I seemed, and grabbed Sal’s forearm over his suit jacket. “Please Sal. Don’t make
him do this. Don’t put him in this position. You have the power to change the deal. You have
the means to make a different deal that the Aianis could still be happy with. I know you do.”
His molten eyes bore into mine as I pleaded with him, and he sighed deeply. “You are right.
I do.” Hope rose in me on hearing his words, but it soon faded just as fast. “But I won’t. It is
the best and cheapest deal for such loyalty.”
My nostrils flared as I narrowed my eyes at him. “There must be something you want, Sal.
Please. Don’t do this to my son.”
His eyes met mine with a knowing look and I gulped. A small smile played at the corners of
his lips. I stepped back immediately, releasing him from my grasp. “Of course, there is
Cecilia. But you already knew that.” I shook my head slowly. “You.”
Every muscle in my body tensed under his heated gaze. I had fallen straight into his trap.
He was giving me a choice. Be his or put the burden of this alliance on my son. I felt numb
inside. He stepped forward and ran his rough knuckles over my cheek. “Your choice CeCe,”
he stated before leaving the room. I peered down at my son barely alive in the hospital bed
and I knew I didn’t have a choice. I would do it if it came to that. I would give up my life to
allow him to live his. A mother's love knows no bounds.
Awakening A Monster
Olivia
“Hey,” Elle’s head poked around the heavily guarded door of Giovanni’s hospital room. I
lifted my head off the edge of his bed where I had been dozing in and out of sleep for the
last few hours. “Your flat mate just dropped some clothes here for you. Are you sure you
don’t want to go home and shower? Get some proper rest?”
I shook my head with a smile as I stood up and took the bag of clothes from Elle. I had to get
that blood-stained dress off me, but I refused to leave the hospital. I think Gio’s family and
the hospital staff were a little taken aback by just how stubborn I could be and they finally
caved, giving me some hospital scrubs to change into, but I would be glad to be in my own
clothes again.
She walked up to the side of the bed and glanced down at her sleeping brother with worry
etched on her features. “No change?”
I yawned loudly, covering my mouth as quickly as I could to avoid the lecture, but it was too
late. “No. No change.”
She gave me a disapproving look. “Liv. You need to sleep. Or shower at least. The doctors
said it could be twenty-four hours before he wakes up. It's only been twenty so just go and
look after yourself.”
“No. I am fine.” I pulled out the leggings and long baggy top and felt relieved that I would at
least feel comfortable in a moment. That was good enough. I didn’t need to go home. I
would only worry and want to be here again as soon as possible.
She huffed dramatically. “Just have a shower, Olivia. Use the ensuite there. I will sit here
with him until you are back. Five minutes. Come on.”
A shower did sound good, and I would only be in an adjoining room. I studied his
handsome face for any signs that he might wake up, but he looked just as peaceful and
deeply sedated as he had for hours.
“Ok. But will you knock on the door if he wakes?”
She nodded her head before shooing me away with her hands. I gave her a small smile,
before I leaned over and kissed Gio’s forehead. Briskly, I grabbed my clean clothes and
locked myself in the bathroom, turning on the hot water.
∞∞∞
Giovanni
A high pitched, constant beeping. Tightness on my chest. A low murmur of a feminine voice.
Those were the first things I sensed as I regained consciousness. My eyelids felt so heavy
when I forced them to flutter open, but I immediately shut them again when they were met
by bright, fluorescent lights on the ceiling. Where was I? What’s going on?
“Fidati di te per farti sparare solo per prenderti una pausa dalla vita. Per quanto ti meriti il
resto, è meglio che ti svegli presto fratello. Tutti stanno cadendo a pezzi senza di te.
Soprattutto mamma e Liv. (Trust you to get shot just so you can take a break from life. As
much as you deserve the rest, you had better wake up soon Brother. Everyone is falling
apart without you. Especially mamma and Liv.)”
Liv? As my sister’s words caught up with my brain, my eyes flew open in panic. Olivia. The
homeless man. I was shot. Was she okay?
I immediately attempted to sit up and cried out in agony as a sharp, stabbing pain rippled
through my chest under the tight restriction of bandages.
“Gio! Oh my god! You’re awake. Wait! Don’t move. Let me call the nurse.”
I was vaguely aware of Elenora faffing around my bed, pulling something off the wall as I
attempted to sit up again, more slowly this time. I glanced down at my naked chest that was
wrapped tightly in bandages and all the wires coming out of my arms. I pulled them out,
wincing a little at the strange sensation.
“Giovanni! Stop! You have to stay in bed!”
“Where is she? What happened to her?” I husked out, my throat sore and dry. Suddenly, a
swarm of bodies entered the room and began ordering me to lie back down and relax in
Italian. I couldn’t relax. Was she hurt? Did they shoot her still? Did they take her?
I was starting to lose my mind as I pushed the hands of nurses and doctors off me who
were now becoming a little more persistent with their commands. I didn’t give a shit if I
was going to need restitching or if I was weak like they were telling me. I had to find her. I
had to know she was safe.
“Liv! Liv!”
My head whipped around to my sorella as she banged violently on a door in the room. I
froze.
Suddenly, the door opened and my heart skipped a beat when I saw Olivia standing there,
hair damp, eyes puffy but completely unharmed. I could have cried. For the first time in my
adult life, I felt like crying from the relief.
Our eyes locked and I got lost in the storm of green and gold that churned with emotion.
She raced towards me, pushing past one of the doctors and flung her arms around my neck.
I closed my eyes as I felt the warmth of her small frame against mine and her sweet scent of
coconut and vanilla invading my senses. I held her tight with one arm that wasn’t tied
against my waist in a sling and buried my face in her damp hair.
I could feel her little body shaking as she cried quietly into my shoulder.
The doctors and nurses all took a step back, realising I wasn't going to try and leave
anymore, and some of them departed. I don’t know how long we stayed like that but when
Olivia pulled back and rested her forehead on mine, both her small hands on either side of
my face, I couldn’t help but smile.
“I am so unbelievably mad at you Gio! You could have died!” She whimpered as my smile
widened.
“It would take more than one bullet to bring me down, bambola.”
She narrowed her eyes and shook her head in disbelief. Her beautiful face creased with
pain and her eyes brimmed with new unshed tears. I reached up and cupped her face in my
hand. “What is it?”
“I’m so sorry. It was my fault. I should have stayed. You were right. I was a coward.”
I chuckled, a deep rumble from my chest that caused me pain, but it was worth it to see her
face soften. “I can’t believe my ears. Olivia Bennett, did you just admit you were wrong?”
Her eyes narrowed in that cute way they did when she was annoyed with me. I never
thought I would be so happy to see that look again. I pulled her tighter into my body as I
perched on the side of my bed. I was very aware that I was naked under the bed sheet and I
was starting to get a little excited…
Moving my head to look at the man in the white coat who I expected was the lead doctor, I
said, “Grazie per avermi salvato la vita dottore. Ma come vedi sto bene. Per favore, dacci un
po' di privacy. (Thanks for saving my life doc. But as you can see, I am fine. Please give us
some privacy.)”
He looked unsure but I kept my hard gaze on him. He knew who I was. “Devi fare un
controllo completo, ma ti darò cinque minuti. (You need to be checked but I will give you
five minutes.)” As he ushered everyone out of the room and Elle gave me a quick kiss on the
cheek before she followed them out, I turned my face back to Olivia. She was still standing
between my legs and had her arms around my neck as I held her against my body.
“Where were we? Oh yes. I was right and you were wrong.”
She rolled her eyes but a smirk plastered on her face. “Even after a near death experience
you are as arrogant as ever.” Her smile fell as she looked into my eyes. “Why did you do
that? Why did you risk your life for mine?”
I brushed a strand of her hair behind her ear.
“Haven’t you got it yet, bambola? This is who I am to you. I'd betray anyone for you. I’d kill
for you. And I’ll always dive in front of bullets for you.” Her eyes widened with every word
as she gulped nervously. “I love you, Olivia.”
Her stunning eyes searched mine as I felt her heart racing in her chest that was pressed
against me. “Ti amo Gio.”
My face broke into the goofiest and widest grin as she told me she loved me in my own
language.
“Did you just speak Ital-“
Her sweet, full lips were on mine in a flash and I closed my eyes and got lost in the magic of
her. She loved me. She finally admitted it. This stubborn, gorgeous woman was mine. She
was a rare gem. Strong, beautiful but precious. Delicate under the hard exterior. And now it
was my job to protect and love her for the rest of my days. When a mafioso man finds his
woman, nothing and no one will come between them. Nearly losing her has ignited
something within me. My zio was wrong. He said love always makes us weaker. But with
her in my arms, I felt stronger than ever. If they thought I was ruthless before, they have
not met Giovanni Buccini in love. They have just awoken a monster. I will come for every
single one of them who wants to cause her harm. They haven’t seen anything yet.
Heaven
Olivia
“When is the doctor coming back? If he is not in here in the next five minutes, I am
discharging myself,” Gio whined as he pushed the plate of food away from him.
“You are not the only patient in this hospital! Stop complaining and eat something…please.
The doctor said you need to get your strength up.” I pushed the plate back towards him on
the table over his bed and he groaned.
“It tastes like shit. Order me a pizza and I’ll eat the lot,” he smirked. I rolled my eyes and
picked up his phone. If that was what it would take to get him to eat, then so be it. I knew
this was the hardest thing for him. Just sitting here in this room, doing nothing. He wasn’t
used to it. He'd been here for three days now and he was itching to escape. He had taken
many calls from his hospital bed all in Italian, so of course, I was kept in the dark about
what exactly they were about, but from his tone and fierce demeanour when he was on
them, I was glad I didn’t know. I had agreed to stay. I was going to give this mafia life a go,
but I was under no illusion that it would be easy. So as much as possible, I was going to ease
myself into it. I didn’t need to know everything Giovanni was doing in his business. As long
as he was honest with me when I needed him to be, that was good enough for me.
“So…are we going to talk about the marriage alliance?” I asked, leaning back in my chair.
His beautiful brown eyes flickered up to mine in panic at first, but when he saw I was
chilled, he relaxed.
“I’m not marrying Camilla. No one is going to come in between us, Liv.”
“I know. I just want to know what you and Max are planning. How exactly are you going to
get out of this alliance and still keep everyone happy?”
He sighed deeply and rubbed his face with his hand. “I’m not. There is no possible outcome
that will keep everyone happy. So, I am going to tell the truth. Salvatore already knows
about us now and it will only piss him off more if he thinks I am trying to trick him.”
I narrowed my eyes at his uncle’s name. “He hates me.”
Gio turned his head to look at my face as I lowered my eyes to my lap. If there was only one
man that I thought could really come between Gio and I, it was him. And it made me
nervous.
“He doesn’t know you. Once he gets to know you, I actually think he will approve of you. He
loves my mamma for her feisty nature, so I am sure he will love you too in time.” He
sounded confident in his words but his eyes showed his own insecurity.
“And if you are wrong? If he doesn’t accept us together? If he still wants you to marry
Camilla?”
“I will quit.”
My eyes widened as I sat up straight. “Quit what?”
“All of it. Underboss. His legacy. I will give it all up.”
I was momentarily speechless as I stared at his serious expression. He would give up
everything he has ever known, everything he has ever worked for, to be with me. “Can you
do that?”
He chuckled and shook his head. “I can do what I like, bambola. If this alliance is more
important to him than me following in his footsteps, then that is his choice.”
I leaned back in the chair, flabbergasted. As much as I wanted that to be true, my gut was
telling me that it wouldn’t be that simple.
“I can see you freaking out, Liv. Stop. I will take care of it."
"Do you know who was behind the shooting yet?" I asked carefully. I knew Gio would not
let this go until he found out who was responsible, which was causing me huge anxiety. I
knew I had to get used to this and quickly, but it didn't make it any easier, knowing he
would go after them.
"No concrete evidence yet, but boss is working on it. Pretty sure we both know who was
trying to kill you..."
I pouted my lips, deep in thought. It was the most obvious answer. The Leones. They said
they would come for me if Gio hadn't met with them, but it hadn't been two weeks. Maybe I
was trusting their words more than I should have. There was only one other person that I
knew wanted me dead. Henry. But surely, he would want to do it himself?
I looked up at Gio as he fixed his intense gaze on me. It was as if he knew what I was
thinking. “Tell me about Henry.”
I gulped and looked away quickly. “He escaped a few months ago. He killed a warden on
night duty and managed to get out of the hospital. As soon as I heard that, I decided to run. I
changed my last name, packed a bag of necessities and booked a flight to Italy.”
When I glanced back at his stone face, I saw the hate he had for Henry raging behind his
eyes. “And he is looking for you?”
“I don’t know. I think so. Why else would he have escaped? I spoke to my best friend from
home a few days ago, Millie, and she said he had broken into her family’s house. He was
obviously looking for something that would lead him to me.” I released a shuddering breath
as I rubbed my forehead. The stress was already increasing at just the idea of him getting
closer to me.
“And that’s why you were leaving? You were panicking?” His voice was soft, trying to
understand my decision to run again, but his face was like stone.
“Yes. I should keep moving. Staying in one place too long is too risky. That was always my
plan. Get a job, earn some money and then move onto the next place until Henry is found.
But then I met you.” I gave him a small smile and his expression changed. He pushed the
table away from him as its wheels glided across the sterile floor. Holding out his tattooed
hand to me, it swamped mine as I placed my dainty hand inside. He tugged hard and I
nearly fell off my seat. I frowned when he chuckled, but he didn’t give up. He tugged again,
only this time, I moved with him, standing up and sitting on the side of his bed next to his
hips.
“Closer,” he demanded, and I saw the desire swirling behind those seductive, molten irises.
“What?”
“Closer bambola,” He pulled my hand again, guiding me to climb onto the hospital bed and
straddle his lap. He entwined his strong fingers with mine as he leaned his head back on the
pillow and looked up at me. His other arm was still taped to his torso to keep him from
ripping open his chest wound. “You never have to be scared of him, Liv. He will never hurt
you again.”
I stared down into his determined eyes and, despite the conviction in his words, panic
started to build within me. “What are you going to do, Gio?” I whispered.
His gaze held mine as the silence stretched between us. His thumb circled the skin on the
back of my hand.
“Do you really want to know?”
Did I? This wasn’t just some business contract, this was personal. This was about me. I had
to know. I nodded slowly.
“I am going to find him before he finds you. And I am going to kill him.”
My heart pounded in my chest at his words. I had no doubt in my mind that he meant them.
But they still made me feel sick. Not because he was going to kill Henry. If there was any
man in the world I wanted dead, it was him, but because I was scared. Scared for Gio. Which
was just ridiculous. But he had just been shot for goodness sake!
“Liv? What’s going on in that pretty head of yours?” his voice was laced with concern.
“I- I don’t want to lose you, Gio. I can’t lose you. Henry will try and kill you. And the police…
they are looking for him. Won’t they be suspicious?”
The small smile that crept up his face caused me to pause my rambling. How was he smiling
in a situation like this?
“You will not lose me, bambola. Not at his hands, I promise you. And you don’t need to
worry about the logistics. It will all be in hand.”
My eyes widened slightly as I realised something. “You are already doing this, aren’t you?”
“I have my people out looking for him already, yes. Don’t worry. He will never come near
you and you won’t have to see him ever again.”
My lips parted as I tried to unscramble my brain to make sense of all of this. Was this really
possible? I always thought I wanted Henry behind bars, but there would always be a chance
he would be released in the future. What Gio was suggesting meant I would be free of him
forever. I will never have to look over my shoulder again. Nate would have justice.
“Are you okay with this?” he asked carefully, his thumb still caressing my skin. It was a
weighted question. It was him asking if I was okay with what he did and what he was
planning to do. I was a terrible person because as I looked at this man who was so adapted
to killing, all I saw was remarkably soft eyes that melted me to my core.
“Yes. I am okay with it,” I leaned forward, placing my hand beside his head on the pillow as
his face lit up at my acceptance. If this was the life I was choosing, I had better get onboard
fast. “Kill the fucker.”
Gio’s eyes darkened immediately at my words as they filled with arousal. He licked his
lower lip as his eyes flickered down to mine and I had never felt so empowered. So turned
on. I was taking back my life. My control. This man was my saviour and I owed him it all.
“Fuck you are sexy when you are badass,” he growled, gripping my hip with his free hand
and pulling me up to rub against his rock-hard erection under the thin hospital sheet. I
moaned as it worked its magic against my clit, only the sheet and my knickers as a barrier
between us.
“This is deeply inappropriate! We are in a public place,” I breathed, even though my hips
were now rocking up and down his length on their own accord, causing pleasurable friction
with every rub.
“That’s never stopped us before,” he husked.
He was right. And I didn’t care. Leaning down, keeping my weight on my hands and
avoiding his bandaged chest, I licked his lips before tugging at his bottom lip with my teeth.
He groaned loudly and pushed his dick into my groin harder. The mere thought of him
being inside me again made my body vibrate with need so strongly, I suspected I was more
than ready to take him in one thrust. Our tongues were locked in a passionate
entanglement as I continued to grind on his erection. I broke the kiss when I couldn’t take it
anymore. I could feel his cock pulsing under the thin fabric and as I sat back, I pulled the
bed sheet away from him. I bite my lip at the sight of his perfect dick – long, heavy and
strong. My pussy clenched for it. I felt empty and desperate without it. Grabbing the base of
it with one hand, I positioned myself above it, and moved my knickers to the side with my
other hand. Gio’s eyes were on mine as I lowered myself onto him, taking him in as far as I
could. Both our mouths dropped open as our breathing ragged at the blissful feeling of
being one again. His hand was still on my hip, all he could do was guide me, but I was in full
control here. And I knew he liked it.
Rocking my hips back and forth, he moaned as his eyes rolled before I leaned down and
kissed him with ferocity once more. I started to lift my body up and down on top of him as I
rode his dick as if it was my own personal fuck toy.
“Fuck Liv! Slow down baby, you feel too good.”
I ignored him as my own pleasurable bubble was building in me. In fact, I increased my
speed, practically twerking on his cock.
“Oh mio Dio. Sei così fottutamente stretto!” He roared and just hearing his sexy Italian
words had me crying out my orgasm as he closed his eyes and growled out his own.
I was a panting mess as I regained my senses and peered down at his sated face under my
eyelashes. “I’ve fucking missed that,” he exclaimed, and I giggled, nodding my head.
Suddenly, his phone vibrated on the side table, and I peered over to see the delivery man
was outside. “Pizza is here,” I said, climbing off him and rearranging my knickers.
His gorgeous face broke into the biggest smile as I walked over to the hospital door to
retrieve the pizza.
“Are you sure I didn’t die and go to heaven?” I heard his deep chuckle behind me.
Maxilla
Maximus
“What do you mean the Leones were out of the country?” I snarled into the phone at Leo,
our Capo of Venice. Venice was split into two territories. One half belonged to the Leones
and one half to us. It was nearly unheard of nowadays for two rival mafia families to be
sharing a city and it had been the cause of our feud for as long as I could remember.
“Lorenzo is on his honeymoon in Santorini and Riccardo took a private jet out of the
country the day before the shooting,” Leo replied calmly.
“Well, that doesn’t make them innocent. In fact, that makes them even more suspicious.
They were covering their backs. This could have been arranged prior to them leaving and
they left the city to escape the fallout.” I was just speaking every thought that entered my
brain now. It was how I processed and unpicked information. I liked to present all the facts
out loud to come to a conclusion. I knew my zio was doing his own investigations into the
shooting, but I like to look into things myself when it comes to Gio and I. We had always
had each other’s backs since we were kids.
“True,” Leo agreed.
“But then, why would they attempt to kill Olivia when they had no reason to. They would
have known it would start a war. So why run away? What would be their gain? It doesn’t
make any sense.”
“Also true,” Leo yawned. I was clearly boring him.
“Just keep tabs on the Leones' every move. Don’t let a single bit of information slip through
your fingers, no matter how insignificant it may seem. They are up to something and I don’t
like it. What about the Aianis?” Francesco was a snake and I didn't trust him as far as I
could throw the fat fuck.
“Nothing alarming. They have no connection to the firearm used or the homeless man."
"But they have a motive... If they knew about Olivia and Gio."
"Si. How is Giovanni? Is he home yet?”
“Home today. And he is not going to be very fucking happy that we don’t have this figured
out yet. So, you better get cracking.”
Leo groaned and hung up. Pocketing my phone, I threw my cigarette onto the gravel
driveway and put it out with my combat boot. Today I was sporting ripped jeans, a loose
tank top, with a flannel shirt tied around my waist. Every finger on my hands adorned thick
silver bands and I had a long silver chain around my neck with a cross. I liked having all my
tats on show as much as possible. Why get your body covered if you are going to hide them
under a stuffy suit?
I knew I didn’t look like your average mafioso. A biker thug was more the image I gave
which zio thoroughly disapproved of, but just because I didn’t wear designer suits and slick
my hair back like my cousin and uncle, didn’t make me any less of a fucking lunatic you
shouldn't want to mess with.
I clumped up the stone steps into my cousin's mansion to look for her. I come here pretty
much every day now. I knew I was playing with fucking fire but I couldn’t help it. I couldn’t
stay away from her. She was my dream woman. Everything I had ever wanted. She looked
like a fucking super model and gave off such a sweet, timid and feminine vibe. It drew me in
immediately. She was my perfect type. But as I got to know her, I realised there was so
much more to her than meets the eye. She was clever. Intuitive. She noticed things quickly
and made her own intelligent judgements with hardly any information to go by. It was
impressive. She didn’t realise it but she had a quiet strength about her. I hated to imagine
what she must have been through at the hands of her own papi. The man was a dickhead
through and through. She has told me bits here and there, but I know there is more. For a
woman to have gone through that all her life and still be such a sweet soul shows the
strength of her character.
Luckily, because Sal had put me in charge of keeping her happy while Gio was away, no one
had batted an eyelid at the amount of time we were spending together. We were falling in
love in plain sight and it was fucking hilarious to know my zio unknowingly caused this.
I found her out by the pool, watching Raya and Sani playing in the water. She was relaxing
on a sun lounger with just a skimpy bikini that showed off her insane figure and a pair of
large sunglasses. My dick twinged in my jeans at the sight of her.
“Cami! Watch this! I can make a bomb!” Sani shouted from the diving board as he jumped
in, causing a huge splash for such a small person. Cami squealed as the drops of water
soaked her and she laughed so freely, I couldn’t help the idiotic smile plastered on my face.
“Well, you might as well go in now!” I chuckled as I strolled out onto the decking. Raya ran
towards me and hugged my legs before I scooped her up and gave her nose kisses. She
burst into giggles as my beard tickled her face. She loved it when I did that. I put her down
as Sani waved before diving under the water with his goggles on.
I turned and saw Cami watching me intensely, her head canted to the side and a pretty
smile on her face.
“I was actually just about to go in!” she replied as she sat up and scooped her long, tanned
legs off the sunbed to give me room to sit down.
“Who is watching the kids today?” I asked, looking around for Cecilia.
“Me,” she said shyly, a small blush creeping up her cheeks. I smirked as I realised how much
that would have meant to her. For Cecilia to trust her enough to watch the children. “It is
only for an hour or so. She went to the hospital to help bring Giovanni back and there's
loads of staff and Marco around, so it’s not really just me but- “
I grabbed her hand in mine to calm her. She looked up at me with those big, blue eyes. “An
hour or a day. It doesn’t matter. She is beginning to trust you.”
She nodded happily. I looked over at my two youngest cousins and groaned internally. That
messed up my plans today. I was going to take Cami somewhere where we could be alone.
Where I could be honest with her about everything.
I spoke to Gio last night on the phone. Together, we decided that we were going to come
clean to Sal and Francesco. We had run out of time to find a better plan. I was going to
marry Cami to keep the alliance and if they weren’t happy with it being because I am a Capo
and not in line to be Boss, Gio would offer to step down. I knew it was a long shot. Sal will
never go for it. He has underestimated me my entire life. He sees me as the impulsive,
cheeky younger nephew who makes a joke out of everything. But that couldn’t be further
from the truth. He had no idea that I studied hard in my spare time to learn about the ins
and outs of business and constantly look into new deals or potential investments that
would give the family more wealth and power. Gio had all that training from Sal and Toni
himself. He was the chosen one. But I was cast aside like the no-good runt of the family. And
I honestly didn’t care. It was how I liked it. I had the freedom to do what I wanted within
my territory and Sal stayed out of my way. Gio and I would have open discussions in front
of Toni or Sal about ideas for upcoming deals. A few weeks later, Toni would be taking all
the credit. Most people would feel disheartened by it but it just amused me. I liked that
none of them except Gio knew how smart I was or how much potential I had. I was the dark
horse of the family and I liked it that way.
But now things are about to change. I was about to be thrust under their radar and not in a
good way. But sometimes life will fuck you sideways and you just have to change positions
and enjoy it. When life gives you lemons and all that bollox. I glanced back at Cami as she
watched the children with a smile and my heart leapt in my chest. I wanted to do this right.
I didn’t want her to think I was just doing this out of duty. Because I would marry her
regardless. She deserved the fairy-tale and I know I look far from prince fucking charming
but I was willing to try my best to give it to her.
“When Cecilia returns, meet me in the maze please. I’ll be there waiting, however long it
takes.” I spoke quietly so the children didn’t hear and her eyes sparkled with excitement.
“Okay.”
I squeezed her hand before I stood up and left to get my plan in action. I would have given
anything to just kiss her whenever I wanted but it would have to wait a little bit longer.
Making my way down to the wine cellar, I pulled out a vintage champagne and grabbed two
glasses. Hiding it in a duffel bag, I ransacked the fridge for strawberries and chocolates
before I sneakily grabbed some throws from the private living room. Cecilia would have my
balls if she knew I had taken them but seeing as she messed up my original plan of taking
Cami to a private beach for the day, she owed me.
I made my way to the maze and after longer than I care to admit, I found my way to the
middle. At least this place held some sentiment for us, so it wasn't a complete lost cause. I
opened out the expensive, cashmere throws on the grass floor, before placing the
Champagne in an ice bucket that I’d also sneaked out of the kitchen. Sitting down on the
throws, I pulled the velvet box out of my pocket and leaned my elbows on my knees as I
opened it in my hands. It was the perfect ring. A silver diamond band with a huge square
solitaire. When I saw it, I instantly thought of her. I just hope she liked it. Snapping the box
shut, I laid down on the ground and stared up at the clouds gliding across the bluest of
skies that reminded me of her eyes. Now to wait.
∞∞∞
Camilla
“Liv! Gio!” Sani bounded over to the couple who walked through the front door hand in
hand. I smiled at Olivia, who returned it warmly. I hoped we could be friends. I’ve never
really had any true friends, not ones that weren’t interested in my family’s money or
influence anyway. My eyes flickered up at Giovanni, standing next to her. I almost had to do
a double take. He looked so different. For one, he was smiling. A genuine smile. He ruffled
Sani’s hair as Sani started to ask him about what it was like to be shot and bombarding him
with millions of questions. But it wasn’t just the smile. He was wearing casual clothes and
his hair wasn't styled back like normal, giving him that intimidating appearance. He looked
youthful today. And happy.
His dark eyes locked with mine as he sensed me studying him and he gave me a small nod
and smile. I grinned back, hoping that this might be a fresh start for us too. If this is the way
he looked when Liv was around, then I really hoped she would move in.
“Were the children okay? They didn’t give you any trouble?” Cecilia walked over to me and
I shook my head.
“No, they were angels,” I smiled. She raised one eyebrow in surprise before smiling. “Well,
thank you Camilla.”
“It was my pleasure. I don’t want to intrude on family time. If you'll excuse me, I am going
to take a walk in the gardens.”
They all nodded as I turned to head out to the maze in the back garden.
“Cami! Wait a sec!” A voice behind me had me stop and turn. Olivia jogged up, her wavy
brown hair flowing behind her. She was so effortlessly beautiful. “I just wanted to say,
thank you.” I scrunched my face up in confusion and she smiled. “How do I put this… thank
you for not being a bitch and trying to steal my man.”
I burst into a fit of giggles as she joined me. “You’re welcome.”
“I hope we can be friends. I think we are going to need each other with these men around,”
she added, and my cheeks hurt from how wide I was smiling.
“I would love that, Olivia.”
“Please call me Liv,” she gave me a quick hug and then pulled back. “I’ll see you around the
house I guess.”
“You are moving in?” I asked excitedly.
“Yes. It looks that way.” She waved as she took a few steps backwards before returning
over to the Buccini family. I felt a weight lift off my shoulders as I made my way out onto
the freshly cut back lawn. This family was so different from mine. I know they seemed
ruthless and terrifying to begin with, but there was love between them all. So much love. It
was the complete opposite to what my family was like. The only person I could vaguely
tolerate was my nineteen-year-old brother, Enzo.
I really hoped I never had to go back to that place. That somehow all of this would work out
for the best and I could stay. Suddenly, the realisation hit me. Olivia was moving in, which
meant the alliance was off. After Giovanni’s near-death experience, he wasn't fucking about
anymore. He wasn’t trying to hide his feelings for Olivia now. It was only a matter of time
before I was sent back to my papi. I paused as I reached the entrance of the maze and
leaned against the bush. I felt panic simmering to the surface and my heart was beating like
crazy. I couldn’t go back. If they didn't kill me, I would be beaten. Then I would be passed
around to my papi’s friends until he found another alliance that he would use me for. No. I
would rather die.
I hunched over, grabbing my stomach as the pain of leaving all of this became real. Having
to leave Max. I am going to run away. It was the only thing I could do. I couldn’t saddle Max
with the burden of trying to protect me from the inevitable. With my mind made up, I stood
up straight and walked into the maze to find him. I will leave tomorrow. I knew he would
help me. He could get me away from here, some cash, a new passport maybe. As I reached
the middle of the maze, I froze at the scene before me. There was Max on one knee holding
a box, his smile was so breath-taking I think it actually stole the air right out of my lungs.
“Wh-what are you doing?” I whispered as I looked around at all the roses on the floor, the
blankets, champagne and food. My eyes flickered back to him on one knee and I slammed
my hand across my mouth.
“Camilla Aiani. I know we haven’t known each other for very long but from the moment I
laid eyes on you, I knew. I knew you had become my whole life. I would go to the ends of
the Earth for you without ever wanting anything in return. But I am going to ask for one
thing… Just this once… And if your answer is yes…I will never ask for anything from you
ever again because you will have given me everything I could ever want.”
My eyes watered as his piercing green eyes bore into my soul, making me feel every word
like a sonnet written just for me. “Cami, will you marry me?”
I opened and closed my mouth in shock. What? How? Was he insane? What about his uncle?
My papi? They would kill him.
His smile wavered as I still stood frozen to the floor, unable to talk. I wanted to marry him
more than anything in the world. But this was impossible…
“Cami? I know what you are thinking. That this is not going to work, that there are too
many obstacles in our way. But do you trust me?” he spoke slowly, every word causing my
raging heart to calm slightly. I nodded.
“Then trust this. Marry me. Please?”
As I stared down at his handsome face, I couldn’t refuse him. I didn’t want to. “Si. Lo
sposerò te.”
His face bloomed like a flower in spring as he jumped to his feet and scooped me up in his
arms, before kissing my lips repeatedly, causing me to giggle against his beard. He opened
the box as he stepped back and I saw the most perfect, elegant diamond ring. It was exactly
to my taste. I gasped as he took it out of the box and held it up to me. “Do you like it?”
Tears were rolling down my face now, as I had never felt happiness like this. “It is
stunning.”
He took my hand and placed the ring on my wedding finger and I couldn’t stop staring. “I
can’t believe it,” I whispered through my tears of joy.
“No going back! You said yes now!” He chuckled, pulling me down onto his lap as he
cracked open the bottle of champagne. I grabbed his face in both my hands and kissed him
passionately as he put the bottle down and wrapped his strong arms around me.
“But how? The alliance…” I started, but he shook his head.
“This is all that matters right now. Me and you. We will tell them the truth. If they refuse to
accept it, we will run. Go live on a desert island somewhere, drinking from coconuts and
fucking like rabbits,” he grinned.
“Can we do that anyway?” I giggled.
“We will do anything you want, princess.”
I smiled down at him again as my heart nearly exploded in my chest. True love. I had
always dreamed of it but never thought I would be lucky enough to experience it. My god, it
was worth it all.
No More Secrets
Giovanni
I should get shot more often. The women in my life know how to look after me. But one
woman in particular is doing a fucking ace job at it. Admiring my girl’s beauty from my
position on the king-sized bed, Liv propped up my pillow behind my head.
“So, this is the plan, Gio. You must take it easy. At least three hours of down time a day, the
doctor said. Just because you are home, you can’t go full speed ahead into underboss mode
again. You still need to rest,” she lectured me and I grinned like a Cheshire cat at how much
she cared.
“Three hours a day in this bed with you? My pleasure.”
She stood up, folding her arms across her chest with a disapproving smile. “No. Three hours
alone. To sleep or just chill.”
I frowned, shaking my head. “That just won’t work. I will only come looking for you.”
She rolled her eyes, but I held her gaze to show her even though I was in a playful mood, I
was being deadly serious. I wanted her around me all the time. I'm not sure I will ever get
any work done again.
“You are impossible.” She wandered over to my dressing room and started pulling out all
her clothes from the suitcase and folding them into neat piles on the floor. I watched her
with a triumphant grin plastered on my face. She was here. With me. Moving her things into
my room. Nothing had ever felt so right.
“Are you really sure about this? I can stay in one of the guest rooms,” she glanced over to
me from her knees on the carpeted walk-in and I frowned.
“Why the hell would you stay in a guest room?”
“Because it is so fast. Living together! We are literally going from a few days in France to
breaking up to moving in in the space of ten days. What if we get sick of each other,” she
said seriously, but I could see the amusement behind her eyes. She knew that would never
happen.
“When you know, you know,” I smiled and she beamed back at me, shaking her head before
she went back to organising her clothes.
“I will send some of my men to collect the rest of your things from Giulia’s later.”
She scanned the small piles of clothes, toiletries and make-up in front of her and shook her
head. “No need. This is everything I own.”
My eyebrows furrowed with confusion. She can’t be serious. I pointed to her belongings
that would barely take up one drawer in my wardrobe. “That…is all you own?”
“That is all I need,” she shrugged back. “When you are on the run, it’s best to pack light.”
I dropped my arm back down. “Well, you are not on the run anymore.” I reached for my
phone and started typing a text to my personal shopper. I knew she was the same size as
Elle. “What shoe size are you? Bra size?”
Liv’s face did that cute little thing it does when she’s confused and slightly annoyed. Her
nose wrinkled, eyes narrowed and lips pouted. “Why do you need to know that? Gio, I don’t
need you to buy me anything! I have my own money.”
“I am guessing a size 5 shoe and 34B?” I glanced down at her breasts admiring them in her
little sundress and she scoffed loudly.
“Hidden talent?” she joked as she picked up her clothes and placed them in a drawer. I was
right. One drawer and a few hangers was all she needed.
I smirked wickedly and finished the text message before she strolled out of the wardrobe
and sat on the chair by the window. She smiled at me when she saw me watching her
intently.
“What?”
“Nothing. I just like it. You being here. Making yourself at home.”
She glanced out the window with a sweet smile as she looked across the well-kept lawns
and swimming pool. “Who’d have thought…that one day I would be living in a bloody
mansion! Definitely not me,” she chuckled to herself. I turned on my side to watch her as
she got lost in her thoughts.
“What was your childhood like? Growing up?” I asked, genuinely interested. I wanted to
know every little detail about this woman. No matter how small or insignificant they may
seem to everyone else. I wanted to know her inside out and for her to know me. For the
first time in my life, I wanted to give myself completely to someone and I had no qualms
about doing so. It was a warming feeling.
“It was okay. I can’t complain. We had a roof over our heads, food on the table and I went to
a good school and had nice friends. It was pretty normal really.”
“Stop being vague bambola. I want to know everything. What is your first childhood
memory? Did you have any hobbies growing up? What were you like at school? I bet you
were a nerd,” I smirked, and she whipped her head towards me with a cheeky grin.
“A-star student through and through,” she beamed proudly.
“Of course, you were,” I chuckled and patted the bed. She climbed off the chair and jogged
over to me, jumping on to the bed like a little kid and lying next to me.
“Oh my goodness! Are these bed sheets actually made of silk? Who do you think you are?
Hugh Heffner?”
Turning on my side slightly so she had my full attention, I smirked. “Don’t change the
subject. I’ve noticed you do that. You change the topic when people ask you personal
questions.” Her face fell slightly as she stared up at me. I got lost in the vibrancy of her two-
toned eyes as her expression became almost sad.
“I do that, don’t I? I don’t mean to. It’s just after so many years of not wanting people to
know what happened to me, I guess I have used it as a coping mechanism.”
“I get it,” I reached up with my one free arm to smooth her hair away from her face and she
blinked back at me. She suddenly seemed so vulnerable. She was lowering her guard.
Letting me in.
“My parents were hard workers. We never had a huge amount of money, but we managed.
After my dad died, mum had to get a second job and we didn’t have any other family close
by, so I ended up in after-school clubs a lot or my friend Millie’s family helped out with
childcare. I think that is why I ended up feeling more comfortable in their house than my
own. I remember wishing or pretending that they were my family when I was little. Then I
would feel so guilty.”
I led still and kept my gaze on her as she traced my tattoos on my hand that was resting on
the bed between us. Again, I recognised it as a coping strategy. Keeping her hands busy or
focusing on something else so she could freely talk without having to meet my gaze.
“I liked drawing and reading as a child. I also loved going down to the beach. Living in
London, there weren’t many beaches near us, but once a year, mum and I would pack the
car up and drive down to Cornwall for a long weekend. We would stay in a caravan park
and I would spend every minute I could by the sea. Even when it was far from sunny, which
it isn’t often in England,” she smiled as her eyes flickered up to mine.
“I’d like to see your beaches in England.”
She giggled and I wanted to kiss her, but I also did not want to distract her. She was
opening up and I could slowly see she was feeling more comfortable about talking about
herself. “I think you would be a little disappointed compared to the beaches you have here
in Italy.”
“Hmmm, I think it's your weather that would annoy the hell out of me! I hate the rain.”
“Oh god, you would hate England then. It never stops raining! But I have always found the
rain quite calming. I’m weird. I love thunderstorms too.”
“You are weird,” I smirked, and she pouted at me. Why was she so cute? “Ok so beaches,
thunderstorms, reading and drawing, A-star student. Sounds like you were a dream child?”
She moved onto her back so she was staring up at the ceiling. “Far from it. I wasn’t naughty.
But I also didn’t let people push me around and I NEVER did anything I didn’t want to.” She
chuckled as she recalled some memories.
“Now that sounds more like the Liv I know.”
“Mills and I used to sneak out of our houses at night just to meet up in a huge oak tree
between our roads and drink her dad’s stolen vodka. I don’t know why we did it. We
thought we were cool. But now I can’t stand the taste of it! That was before everything
changed.”
Her body tensed next to me, and I knew instantly what she was referring to. Or who she
was referring to. I didn’t know whether pushing her to talk about this now would be a step
too far, but to my surprise, she continued.
“Mum met Neil on a dating app. Ironically, it was me who suggested she sign up. She had
never had a relationship since dad and I felt bad for her. She always worked so hard and
when she wasn’t working, she was with me or sorting the house. I just wanted her to find a
man to bring a little joy into her life.” Her tone was laced with sadness and regret, and it
made my heart ache. “Everything was great to start with. Neil was nice to mum. Wined and
dined her. Took her on weekends away. He had a good job and was also widowed with one
child, so they had things in common. It was only after him and Henry moved in that things
started to change. Neil became lazy. He expected mum to do everything for him. Cook his
dinner, keep on top of the housework constantly even though she still had two jobs. He
used to pick fights over the smallest things. If there was a plate left in the sink for more
than an hour or if something in the house broke. It would be her fault. They argued like cats
and dogs but he would always apologise quickly and make it up to her with a fancy dinner
reservation or be overly affectionate. I told her to leave him, but she refused. I think a part
of her just thought having him around was better than the loneliness of having no one.
Soon the fire in her burned out and she became indifferent to the way he treated her. She
just put up with it. She stopped fighting back.”
I reached for her hand and gave it a supportive squeeze as I started to rub circles on her
skin to soothe her. It was for my benefit as well as hers. This was hard for me to listen to. I
didn’t like the idea of anything bad happening to her but I knew I was about to hear it all.
And I needed to. I wanted to know. So that when I found that fucker, he would pay duly.
“So, Henry was like his dad?” I asked, trying to understand if their behaviours were the
same but she shook her head.
“No. Neil was an arse. But he wasn’t violent, and he wasn’t possessive or controlling. He just
expected things from my mum that he had no right to and made her feel like shit when she
didn’t deliver. Henry was different. The whole situation was different.”
I waited for her to continue and saw her inhale deeply before she released a shuddering
breath.
“After the night he came into my room and tried to…have sex with me. He became so
fervently angry. It was as if a switch flicked on in him and all he could feel was rage. Every
second of every day. At first, I thought he was just mad that I rejected him, and he would
cool off eventually, but when he started doing things to torment me, I knew there was
something wrong. He would use any opportunity we were alone to try and intimidate me.
Scare me. He would corner me in rooms. Purposefully, throw or bang things next to my
head to make me jump. I would wake up and find him sitting in my room in the dark in the
middle of the night. That’s when I fitted a lock on my door. That pissed him off more. He
would cut up my clothes if he thought they were too revealing. He started to follow me
everywhere. I would be out with my friends in a café or park and he would walk past
glaring at me. He would sit outside my friend Millie’s house in his car when I was round
there for dinner and knock on the door offering me a lift home. He was suffocating me. But
the worst was his words. The things he would say. In one breath he would tell me I was
worthless or a whore and the next he would be calling me beautiful and that I was his. He
spread rumours about me throughout the village so no boys would want to come near me.
He threatened any men who looked my way. He used to start fights with men who spoke
about me to him and then would come home and tell me it was my fault that he had beaten
them to a pulp.”
My breathing was becoming laboured as I tried to control the lava of fury that was
spreading through my veins. For two years, this had been her life before he even murdered
her boyfriend. Fuck I don’t think I have ever wanted to kill someone more in my entire life.
She turned back to me on my side. “I know what you are thinking. Why didn’t I tell anyone?
Why didn’t I get help?”
I shook my head. “No. I wasn’t thinking that at all.”
“I tried. I spoke to my mum. But she was dealing with her own despair. Even though Henry
was making my life hell, he had never been physically violent towards me. It got
progressively worse when I turned eighteen and started dating Nate but I knew I would be
gone soon. I knew I would be at university, miles away and the distance would make him
forget about me. That he’d lose interest. And then that night happened. The night he
murdered Nate.”
“Come here,” I whispered as I pulled her into my body and wrapped my arm around her
small frame. She rested her head on my shoulder and I exhaled loudly. “I know that was
hard for you to talk about. But I want you to know that even though I am possessive and
protective of you, I will never be him, Liv. I will never cause you any harm or make you feel
like you're not the most amazing person in the world to me.”
She raised her head to look into my eyes and smiled. “I know. You are nothing like him. You
are the only thing in my life that makes me feel safe. I love you so much Gio.”
I leaned down and kissed her forehead. “I love you bambola.”
“Shall we make a deal?” she said with a secret smile.
“I’m listening.”
“I will stay with you for two hours every day while you rest and we will use that time to
talk. To learn everything there is to know about each other. No more secrets.”
The rage that I had felt just minutes ago, had simmered down as I gazed into her eyes.
“Deal.”
She leaned down and kissed me. A slow, sensual and fucking delicious kiss. I would never
get enough of her lips. When she pulled back, I frowned, wanting more.
“But maybe a little of that time could be spent helping me to relax in other ways?” I
smirked, raising one eyebrow suggestively.
The desire swarmed in her eyes as she bit her lip seductively.
“You mean… something like this?”
She moved her way down my body, kissing my abs below my bandaged chest as she went,
and I moaned as she unzipped my trousers. I lifted my head to watch her pull out my cock
and hold the base of it with her little hand as she held my gaze.
“Hmmm,” I hummed as she licked from the bottom to my tip and flicked her tongue over
the top. I was growing instantly hard just at that action. When she took me into her talented
mouth, I dropped my head back and groaned in appreciation. “Fuck. Yes, exactly like that.”
Stand By Your Man
Olivia
Waking up for the first time in the Buccini mansion felt oddly normal. Like I was always
meant to be here. Feeling the weight of Gio’s muscular arm draped over my waist and his
scent swarming my senses was the nicest way I had ever woken up in my life. Turning
around carefully so as not to wake him, I gazed up at his sleeping face and smiled.
No wonder this man could get away with murder with a face and body as gorgeous as his.
There I go again. Thinking about him being a murderer. I sighed deeply as I took in his
distinguished features. I was starting to train my brain to see his way of life differently. He
was born into this role, and he had never known anything different. He told me that he did
what he had to do to survive and to protect his family. That was always what drove him.
When I think about it like that, I can understand it. Would I kill to survive? Yes. Would I kill
to protect those I loved? Without a doubt. So how did that make me any worse than him?
Not many people can say that they have witnessed a murder in their lifetime. Yet I can. I
watched the life drain out of Nate’s eyes. I saw the pain, horror and fear in them. And I
watched it almost happen to Gio too. So even though I couldn’t pretend to understand what
Gio did for a living, I had experienced it first-hand. It was a dog-eat-dog world he lived in
and it seemed to be them or us. I was just going to have to accept that death and revenge
were always going to be a part of my life now. Perhaps it was always meant to be. Perhaps
it was my destiny. Because no matter how I felt about Gio’s darkness, my love for him and
his family was far greater.
I ran my hand over his bandage lightly and pulled at the corner to check his stitches. It
healed quickly. Good. He was going to have physio for a few weeks, which he wasn’t very
pleased about, but I would force him. After yesterday, I realised I had a way to get him to do
just about anything I wanted. I grinned mischievously as I thought back to how I turned
him into putty in my mouth as I gave him what he described as the best head of his life.
“What are you smirking at bambola?” He mumbled with his eyes still closed. My mouth
gaped open. How did he know? “I can feel you watching me sleep, you weirdo.”
I giggled and moved his arm off my waist, before climbing out of his bed. No, our bed. Oh,
that feels strange. That all of this is now technically my home. “Where are you going?” he
groaned as he opened his eyes and reached his arm out for me that was not bandaged to his
chest. I walked naked towards his bathroom- our bathroom and gave him a seductive
glance over my shoulder.
“To shower. I have work to do,” I replied.
“What work?” he called out.
I poked my head around the door frame. “I am your sibling’s nanny, if you haven’t
forgotten?”
“Last I remembered, you quit!”
I smirked as he pulled himself upright in the bed and flung the covers off him. “Hmm, that
was when I thought the man I loved who happened to be my boss was using me, marrying
another woman and had gone behind my back and betrayed my trust.”
I heard his heavy footsteps padding towards the bathroom as I turned the shower on.
When I spun around, he was leaning against the door frame, stark naked. His tousled hair,
tanned skin, rippling muscles and that perfect dick that was sporting its morning glory
made my mouth instantly water. I don’t think I will ever not be turned on by the sight of
this man. He was something else.
“Ouch! Still too raw bambola. Don’t remind me,” he said with a twinkle in his eye. I stepped
towards him and slowly started to undo the bandages on his chest. The doctor said I would
need to rebandage them today.
“Well, I would like my job back if Cecilia hasn’t found anyone else?” I asked as I started to
unravel his chest tenderly.
“You don’t need to work for us anymore. You can just spend time with the kids whenever
you want. As part of this family,” he replied, watching my face intensely.
“I like being their nanny and I like teaching them. It gives me purpose and I am earning my
own money. I do not want to sit around this house all day doing nothing and living off you.”
He smiled as I pulled the last of the bandage off and then he rolled his shoulder slowly,
giving a blissful expression at being able to move his other arm again. “Does it feel okay?”
“Yes. It feels fine. Better. I don’t even think I need the physio.”
“Ahh ahh! You are seeing the physio whether you like it or not.”
“Is that an order bambola?”
“Yes, it is. Each time you go, and you are not an ass to the physio who is only trying to do
their job, you will be rewarded!”
His dark eyes narrowed with amusement as he wrapped both his arms around my waist.
“What will be my reward?”
“You will have to wait and see,” I smirked, walking us towards the huge three-headed
waterfall shower. I carefully removed the padding around his bullet wound on his back and,
to my delight, it looked amazing. He would have a scar for sure, but it was healing so well.
Then I checked the stitching on his chest where they had operated on his lung.
As the water hit our bodies, I traced his chest with my fingertips and he closed his eyes.
“You are going to have scars but they look better.”
“Add to the collection,” he smirked. I rolled my eyes as I washed him carefully. “What did I
ever do to deserve you, bambola?”
I smiled as I leaned forward and kissed his toned chest. “I think I should be asking you the
same thing. You are the one who saved my life.”
He opened his eyes and peered down at me with so much love and devotion that my insides
melted right there in that shower cubicle. “And I’d do it again in a heartbeat. You can have
your job back, but you might have to fight Marco and Camilla off for the role now.”
I chuckled as he turned and picked up the loafer and started to wash my body, caressing
every part of me but paying particular attention to my boobs. He was definitely a booby
man.
“I like Cami. I think we will be good friends and Max and her are well suited.”
Gio looked down at me with an intrigued expression. “What?”
“Most girls would feel some kind of jealousy towards the woman that is living in her
boyfriend's house with the intent on marrying him.”
“Why? Should I be jealous?” I lifted one eyebrow with a smirk.
“Of course not.”
“Well, there you go then. And I am not like most girls, Gio.”
“No,” he grinned. “You most certainly are not.”
∞∞∞
As I made my way down to the children’s wing, I couldn’t remember a time that I felt
happier than I did right now. I knew we still had a lot of shit to deal with but I felt a sense of
security and understanding between Gio and I, now that we were open to communicating
and on the same page about everything. It was hard to imagine anything coming between
us again.
“Signorina Jones, nice to see you back,” Marco nodded at me as I approached the playroom.
“It’s good to be back. And Marco? Thank you. For what you said. You were right. I do need
this family,” I smiled up at him from his towering height and a genuine smile crept onto his
face. I knew I would do it one day. He is such a big teddy bear at heart. I now understood
why Cecilia had chosen him as the children’s main bodyguard.
Pushing open the door to the playroom, I could already hear their laughter. Sitting on the
floor on cushions were Sani, Raya and Cami playing a game of fishing with wooden
alphabet letters. It was a game I had invented before France and it made me so happy to see
them still wanting to play it.
“Liv! Look! We are playing catch the letter game!” Sani shouted as he tossed his wooden
fishing rod into the makeshift pond (bowl of water).
“I can see! Well done!” I strolled over and kneeled beside Raya. “Is there a spare rod for
me?”
“You can share mine,” Raya smiled up at me and I nodded.
“Thank you.”
“It’s okay. Here, take mine. I’ll leave you guys to it,” Cami held hers towards me as she
attempted to stand up. I frowned. She always seemed to feel like she had to leave around all
of us. Except the children. They seemed to make her feel comfortable.
“No. Please stay if you would like. I hear you have been spending time with these rugrats.
Thank you.”
She gave me a shy smile and sat back down on the cushion. “Yes. We have been having lots
of fun.”
“So, do we have two nannies now? You and Cami?” Sani asked as he pulled off the letter m
from the end of his magnetic rod. I smiled over at Cami and nodded for her to answer.
“No Sani. I am just a friend who likes playing with you both. I am not a teacher like Liv.”
“Are you Max’s friend? Like Liv is Gio’s?” Sani asked, looking between us both. I chuckled at
his boldness. I loved that about him. He always spoke exactly what was on his mind.
“Yes, I suppose I am,” she replied. And that is when I looked down at her hand and caught
sight of the stunning engagement ring on her finger. I froze. My immediate thought was had
Giovanni given her that to keep up appearances, but then I knew he would never. Which
only meant one thing…
“Hey guys! It’s a lovely day. Why don’t we go for a walk around the grounds? We could go
on a bug hunt.”
“Yeah!” They both cried and jumped up excitedly.
“Urgh! I hate bugs!” Cami scrunched her nose and giggled.
“They are more scared of you than you are of them. That’s what Liv says. You are a giant
and they are only tiny,” Sani held out his hand to her in support and my heart burst with
pride. She took it with a smile.
“Ah well, I suppose I need to be brave then.”
The four of us made our way outside and once the children had run off to look for bugs, I
decided to broach the subject as Cami and I walked alongside one another.
“Congratulations,” I leaned in and whispered in her ear. She glanced over at me in shock
and then looked down at her hand as my eyes moved to the ring.
“Oh.” Her pink blush settled on her cheeks as she smiled like a giddy teenager. “Thank you.
Max proposed yesterday. I still can’t believe it.”
My heart soared for her and Max. I hadn’t spent much time with either of them but it was
clear that they were deeply in love. They had fallen hard and fast. Just like Gio and I.
“You two are perfect together, Cami. I really wish you all the happiness.”
Her smile faded and she suddenly seemed stressed as her shoulders tensed and she
swallowed down her emotions. “What’s wrong?”
“I really love him, Liv. But what if love isn’t enough? Salvatore and my papi control our
lives. If they do not accept us together, we don’t have many options,” she sighed.
I shook my head as anger bubbled in my chest. How was that fair? In this day and age,
people should be able to choose who they want to marry. “I don’t understand that. This
mafia culture you all live by. It’s so oppressive.”
She smiled sadly and nodded. “It is. But it has always been this way. The boss of the families
has all the control. Everyone below them has to follow their commands and stay in line or
they will face severe consequences. It’s been installed in us since birth. To respect the boss
above all else.”
“Do you really think your father will not allow you to marry Max? When he sees how much
love you share?” I asked curiously. She scoffed and shook her head.
“My papi does not care about my happiness, Liv. He will see me marrying Max as a waste.
He wants influence and sway over other mafia families. The only way he will get that is if I
am married to a boss or soon-to-be boss. Marrying a capo would be lessening my rank as it
is. I am the daughter of a boss.”
My heart ached at her words. She sounded so defeated. “Don’t give up Cami. Gio and Max
are not going to. They will fight for us.”
She stopped walking and turned to me, reaching for both my hands. As her blue eyes bore
into mine, I saw her worry. “That is the problem, Liv. They are going to get themselves
killed.”
“What?”
“If Sal and Francesco band together and see this for what it is; a betrayal and defiance
against them. There will be nothing to stop them from killing Max and perhaps Gio. Men
have been killed for far less in these families.”
My gut twisted as I realised just how dangerous this whole thing was. Not only was the
threat outside of this family, but it was within its very walls as well.
“What do we do?” I whispered as she let go of my hands.
“We are doing the only thing we can do.” She looked out over the grass as we saw Max and
Gio smoking cigars on the back porch of the mansion, watching us. “We are standing by our
men. No matter what the cost.”
Reward
Giovanni
Stretching back in my chair and doing a few more of those exercises the physiotherapist
taught me a few hours ago helped to ease the tightness in my chest and back. I had come to
my office to try and get on top of matters that I had ended up giving to Max to take
responsibility for in my absence. He had kept everything running smoothly, but I didn’t like
not having a handle on things.
I pulled up the CCTV footage we had installed outside the front of the Leone mansion and
watched for any developments over the last 24 hours. Everyone was certain it was them
who hired the hit on Liv but the more I thought about it, the less likely it seemed. They had
backed off from her completely after they gave her the message to tell me to meet them.
They hadn’t been sighted in Verona and my men who had been watching over Olivia hadn’t
seen anything suspicious. So why that night? Why pay a homeless man to shoot her? It
didn’t make any sense. They had their own skilled hit men who could do the job far better.
And after Max informed me that neither of them were in the country when it happened, it
seemed even less likely.
But then, if it wasn’t them, who else would it be? Henry? Possibly. But I had a feeling he was
at a point where he had nothing to lose. He would come after her himself, not pay someone
else to do it for him. I was growing more and more frustrated that my private investigator
had not found him yet. I hated the idea of him being out there on the loose.
Also, Cami had managed to hear some rumours circulating around the Aiani household that
one of Francesco's most trusted soldiers was missing. I knew it couldn't have been the
homeless shooter as the police have identified him as a man who had been living on the
streets for years but it still seemed like a coincidence to have one of his men missing
around the same time.
One thing remained though. The Leone’s were starting a war. They have formed an alliance
with the most ruthless and powerful family in the Cosa Nostra. The only family that could
truly take us in numbers and power. And they were still responsible for my father’s death.
They thought they could use Olivia to get to me. That I would fall into their trap and meet
with them alone? What do they take me for? A fucking mug?
But I can’t lie and say I wasn’t curious as to what they possibly wanted to say to me. I was
eighty percent sure it was a trap, to either take me hostage for influence over Sal or to kill
me. But there was still that small part of me that wondered if there was some other reason.
All of this was just adding to my fucking headache and body tension as I realised that
nothing was falling into place. It's like I had the outer edge of a jigsaw but was missing the
centre pieces.
A knock on the door startled me from my thoughts and when Olivia’s head popped around
it, I beamed.
“Are you busy?”
“I am never too busy for you bambola. Come in,” I leaned back in my leather chair and
curled my finger, demanding she come inside. She gave me a flirtatious look before she
opened the door wider and revealed her body. She stepped into my office and closed the
door, locking it from the inside. My eyes travelled down her body and my eyebrows
furrowed at what she was wearing.
“Why are you wearing my robe?” I also noticed she was wearing heels.
She turned and leaned back against the door and the look in her eyes made me instantly
hard. “I heard you were a good boy today for the Physio.”
My lips curled up into a sly smirk as I clasped my hands together. “I was.”
“Well, I guess you deserve your reward then.” I knew my heated eyes would be giving away
my excitement as she slowly started to undo the knot in the belt. “Your personal shopper
came by today. Gave me far too many things that I do not need Giovanni.” Her voice was a
seductive purr, and I couldn’t take my eyes off her as she opened the robe and let it fall to
her feet.
Holy shit.
“But I decided there was no harm in keeping a few items. What do you think?”
I gulped as my eyes roamed every inch of her mouth-watering curves in the sexiest lingerie
I had ever seen. It was all black lace but had extra thin straps over her hips and breasts,
giving a bondage vibe as well as a suspender belt and sheer stockings. She looked fucking
incredible. She prowled towards me like a lioness as I sat motionless, enjoying the view.
“Cat got your tongue?” she smirked.
“Bambola, you look insane,” I growled, my voice a deep rumble and I licked my lips.
She put her hands on the arms of my chair and pushed me back so she could give herself
enough room to perch on my desk in front. I leaned forward and ran my hands up her
thighs, but she pushed them off, wagging her finger at me.
I frowned as I sat back in my chair again. “Ah, that is not your reward. I seem to remember
a time when you enjoyed watching me… touch myself.”
Her eyes held my gaze, and I bit my bottom lip. Fuck me. Please tell me she is going to give
me a show. “Hmmm, but I never got to see you come. I felt robbed.”
She smiled with sass and my raging boner was now becoming really fucking uncomfortable
in my trousers. “Well how about we put that right?”
She leaned her hands back on my desk and lifted each of her heels onto the arms of my
chair, spreading her long, slender legs wide in front of me, giving me the perfect view. I
grabbed her ankles in my hands to stop me from diving at her. Lifting one hand, she first
caressed one of her tits in her lace bra, playing with her nipples through fabric, and I licked
my lips again. My mouth was watering. Her lips parted and she moaned softly, causing my
dick to pulse against the restriction of my trousers. I dropped my head back against my
headrest as my hooded eyes watched her hand travel further south where she started to
rub herself over her knickers. I groaned as I watched her breathing increase, and her
fingers working in circular motions. She was so fucking sexy, it was insane.
“Let me see you bambola,” I husked, and she met my command by pulling her black lace
knickers to the side and showing me her sweet, pink pussy. She started to pleasure herself
and when she pushed two fingers inside her vagina, I practically growled. My breathing
was hard and my jaw tight as I watched her bringing herself closer. When my eyes flickered
up to hers, I groaned as I realised she was watching me intensely. Just like she did that day
behind the door.
“You are so fucking gorgeous Liv. Look how hard you make me,” I breathed as I unzipped
my trousers and pulled out my erection. I was rock hard as I slowly started to move my
hand up and down my length, pleasuring myself as I watched her. Her eyes watched me
hungrily and she started to become breathless as she circled her clit again. Her legs began
to shake on the arms of my chair and I kept my eyes glued on her face so I could watch her
climax. She dropped her head back, her tits rising and falling with frantic breaths as she
cried out her orgasm. I had to stop pumping myself or I would have fucking cum just
watching her.
I dove at her. I had enjoyed the show but my whole body was craving to touch her myself.
To fuck her until she was screaming my name. Grabbing the back of her neck, I crashed my
lips against hers as she was still coming down from her pleasure and pulled her lace
material down from her breasts so I could play with her beaded nipples. She moaned loudly
against my lips as she wrapped her legs around my waist, pulling me into her. I was still
fully clothed with just my dick out as I pushed her down to lie flat on the surface of my
desk. I placed feathery kisses down her body, giving each nipple some attention from my
tongue and teeth until I reached her soaking centre. Hooking her legs over my shoulders, I
knelt and devoured her pussy, moaning against her wetness as she shook on the table.
Keeping her in place with my firm hand over her stomach, I enjoyed every lick, flick and
suck of her clit, before I plunged into her centre and fucked her with my tongue. She was a
moaning mess by the time I had had my fill and I stood up, staring down at her spread wide
for me on my desk. She looked up at me through her dark eyelashes, panting heavily as I
wrapped my hand around her neck and positioned myself at her entrance.
“I am going to be fast and rough, bambola. Tell me to stop if it's too much,” I ordered, and
she gave me a seductive smile.
“Be as rough as you like, Gio. I love it,” she breathed and I roared as I slammed inside her
hard and deep, pulling her body down onto my dick by her throat. I didn’t stop there as I
pounded her tight pussy relentlessly as she screamed my name and ordered me to fuck her
faster. Without warning, I pulled out of her and grabbed her around the waist, flipping her
so her stomach was against my desk. I groaned at the sight of her delicious ass bending
over my desk and pushed her legs out wider so I could settle between them.
Rubbing my dick up and down her dripping slit, she whimpered and begged for more. I
eased into her slowly this time as I felt myself fill her to the base and she cried out at the
intensity. Once I was fully inside her, I spanked her ass cheek and she screamed in pleasure
and pain, which made me smirk. She tried to move against me but I leaned over her body,
my weight holding her still and whispered, “Shall I make you cum on my cock, bambola?”
“Yes,” she panted, and I nibbled her ear lobe.
“What are the magic words?”
“Fuck me now!” She growled, impatient and feisty as always. I chuckled.
“Good girl.” Grabbing her arms behind her back, I held on tightly to them as I did what she
asked of me. I fucked her hard, fast and deep. Seeing her bent over my desk like this in this
sexy lingerie and heels while I was still fully dressed was the most erotic fuck of my life and
I doubted I would ever get any work done on this desk again. Watching the pleasure on her
side profile, cheek to my desk as I claimed her again and again, had me close to coming.
When I was sure she could handle more, I went deeper, rougher, pulling her body back by
her arms. Her tits bounced against the surface of my desk as she screamed my name.
I felt her walls clench around me as she came on my dick and she wasn’t quiet about it. I
couldn’t hold back.
“Fuck Liv!” I growled as I plunged into her one last time, lost in her. I released her arms and
rested my hands on the desk at the sides of her slumped body as I tried to calm my
breathing. I pulled out of her slowly and she gasped as I sat back on my chair, utterly spent.
She stood up and turned around. I grabbed her hand and pulled her down onto my lap as I
kissed her lips. “That was quite a reward.”
“I seemed to get something out of it too,” she smirked and I chuckled, burying my head into
her neck and kissing her skin.
“How am I supposed to ever get anything done in this room again? Every day I will have the
memory of you spread over my desk in this insanely hot underwear.”
“Life is all about balance, Gio. Work hard to play hard,” she winked at me and I kissed her
lips. Shit, I was getting hard again. Suddenly, my office phone rang, breaking our kiss, and I
groaned.
“Aren’t you going to get that?” She asked.
“No, let it go to voicemail.” I leaned back towards her, sliding my tongue across her lips
again as I heard the beep. My zio’s deep voice was an instant mood killer.
“Giovanni. Francesco, Enzo, Toni and I will be coming to the house tomorrow at 10am to
discuss wedding plans. I expect Maximus and Camilla to also attend. Don’t fuck this up.
Ciao.”
Dropping my head back against the leather chair and closing my eyes, I inhaled deeply.
“If the stick up his arse was any bigger, he’d be a frickin’ tree.”
I laughed loudly at her insult and she gave me a dazzling smile. “I have to agree. I guess
there is no time like the present. Are you ready bambola? Tomorrow is going to be intense.”
“You want me to be there?” she asked, surprised.
I have thought about this a lot. All the different possible ways to tell Sal and Francesco that
the wedding was not going ahead. I knew she would be in danger the moment it left my lips
from the Aianis, so I wanted her with me where I could protect her. “Yes, I want you by my
side. Always.”
The smile she gave me melted my cold heart.
The Alliance
Olivia
“So, what is your plan exactly?” Cecilia asked as she paced the cream carpet of the private
living room in her black silk pantsuit. She looked nervous. She looked how I felt. But I was
trying to hide my anxiety for Gio’s sake. He didn’t need to be worrying about me when he
had so much stress to deal with already.
“We will tell him the truth. I will make it clear that I am with Liv and Max will marry
Camilla to maintain the alliance. If Francesco is not happy with that, I would suggest Max
becomes underboss.”
“And if they don’t go for any of it? You know how ugly this could get, Giovanni. Do you
really think it is best to have Liv and Camilla here?” Her brown eyes flickered at me and I
sat up straighter.
“I want to be here, Cecilia. We have a right to be. This is about us after all,” I glanced at
Camilla who was sitting next to Max on the opposite sofa and she gave me a smile of unity.
Cecilia breathed in deeply as Giovanni leaned back on the sofa we were both perching on
and threw his muscular arm around the back of me. “Mamma, try not to stress. You never
know, this could all work out for the best and we may get what we all want.”
She scoffed loudly and shook her head. The door of the living room opened and we all
tensed until we saw Elle strolling through, looking as beautiful and trendy as ever. She was
wearing a mini leather skirt with a baggy black T-shirt tucked in and killer studded ankle
boots.
“What are you doing here?” Cecilia asked as Elle walked past Max and Cami, giving them
both kisses on the cheek before she came and sat next to me.
“Showing my support for my favourite couples, of course. You didn’t think I was going to be
left out of the drama, did you?” she teased, and Cecilia looked at Giovanni for help.
He raised his hands up in surrender. “Not my idea. These three women come as a package
deal now.”
I grinned at him over my shoulder as I turned back to Elle and gave her a wink.
“Sal is not going to be happy with this.”
“Cecilia, come and sit down. Relax. No one has died yet,” Max smirked as she paused her
pacing to give him a death glare. She was so on edge and I can’t say it wasn’t making my
insides curl at the sight of her out of character behaviour. Gio placed his huge hand on my
knee and I looked down and realised my leg had been bouncing with nerves. His firm but
soothing grip calmed me as he caressed my skin with his fingers.
“What’s all this?” The unmistakable and intimidating voice of Salvatore Buccini caused my
heart to race. We all looked over at the doorway as he strode in with an air of authority and
arrogance, his black eyes scanning each of our faces but resting on me. I gulped as I saw the
pissed-off expression at me being here. “I didn’t call for a fucking family reunion Giovanni.
This is a business meeting. All of you out,” he commanded.
No one moved, which caused his square jaw to tick with irritation.
“This business meeting affects everyone in this room so they will all stay. This is my house
and theirs. If you wanted a private meeting, you could have hosted it at yours,” Gio kept his
voice polite and calm but it also had an edge of authority. Challenge. I could now feel my
heart thundering against my rib cage as the two most powerful men in the room glared at
each other.
“Sal. Gio is right. This does affect us all. Please let them stay,” Cecilia stepped up to his uncle
and placed her hand on his pin-striped suit jacket. His face softened ever so slightly as he
looked at her.
“I don’t see how this affects anyone but Giovanni and Camilla.”
“Please. Take a seat and we will explain everything. Before Toni brings Francesco in. Please
Sal. Hear them out.”
I couldn’t stop staring at Cecilia. I was in awe of this woman. Just moments ago, she was a
nervous wreck and now she had that calm and stern mask on and was commanding the
most control and power of this terrifying man. He huffed angrily but listened to her as he
undid his suit button and took a seat in an armchair.
I finally felt like I could breathe again, but I knew we were only just getting started. Gio
gave me a reassuring smile before he pulled himself up off the sofa and walked over to the
mini bar in the room. We all sat in silence as he poured his uncle a dark coloured drink and
strolled over to him confidently to hand it over.
After Sal took his first swig, Giovanni spoke.
“I understand the importance of this alliance with the Aianis and I know that it is vital we
have their support going forward. However, I believe there is a way of keeping that alliance
and still allowing us all to get what we want.”
“What are you saying Giovanni,” Sal hissed. “If you are choosing that nanny over your
loyalty to this family, so help me God. You will regret it.”
I swallowed my fear as his molten black irises blazed with rage when he looked my way. I
noticed Gio’s body tense, his back muscles rippling in that tight black shirt, but he kept his
cool.
“Her name is Olivia. This is bigger than just me and my feelings, Boss. Yes, I am with Olivia
and trust me when I say no one will come between us. But this is not just about me. Camilla
is also in love with someone else.”
Sal’s eyes widened as his head snapped to Camilla. “I don’t see why I should care about that.
This is a marriage alliance to benefit both families, not some fucking match-making
mission.”
“But that is what I am trying to say. We can still keep the alliance and she can marry the
person she chooses,” Gio stated calmly.
“Who?” Sal’s curiosity snapped.
“Me,” Max said, standing up from the sofa, crossing his hands in front of his body. His eyes
held his uncles in challenge, and we all held our breath.
A slow, disbelieving chuckle started from Sal’s chest and soon turned into a raucous,
vindictive laugh. “You? She is in love with you?”
No one spoke and I could feel my own anger building at his harsh dismissal and lack of
respect for Max.
“Maximus and Camilla will marry instead and keep the alliance,” Gio raised his voice
slightly over Sal’s laughter and I could hear the irritation in his tone. He was protective of
his cousin too. The only person who didn’t seem surprised or upset by Sal's reaction was
Max himself. He held his gaze on his uncle, his face expressionless, and waited patiently.
“You are all fools if you think Francesco will go for this.”
“He will have no choice if you order it. We all know you have the upper hand in this deal. If
you change the conditions, what can he do? He will not back out of such an association, that
will bring his family phenomenal power and wealth,” Max spoke confidently, as if he had
rehearsed this. He probably had.
Sal’s laughter stopped as he raised his hand and rubbed his bristly, grey stubbled jaw. “And
why would I do that? That just sounds like far too much trouble than it's worth. I gave
Francesco my word that his daughter would be married to a future boss and I do not go
back on my word.”
Gio walked away from Sal, back towards me. Our eyes locked and he gave me a small smile
before turning back to his uncle.
“I understand and respect that your word is loyal Boss. Which is why I am willing to give up
my title to Maximus. I will happily allow him to step up to underboss and I will become
Capo. He is more than capable of such a role and if this alliance and your word is as
important as you say, it is a sacrifice I am willing to make.”
Everyone watched as the colour drained out of Sal’s face and he turned a shade of grey. His
eyes narrowed and his nostrils flared. He looked lethal.
“It is, of course, your choice, Boss. Whatever is best for the family,” Gio added before
returning to his position on the sofa and leaning back, placing his arm behind me on the
back of the chair. I gave him a sideways glance as he continued to watch his uncle like a
hawk. Fuck, I loved this man. I wasn’t sure what I was expecting, but it wasn’t that. He held
his own with so much grace and discipline of his emotions and I couldn’t be prouder.
Suddenly, the door opened again and Sal’s lap dog, that bastard, Toni, waltzed in with a
shit-eating grin followed by a short and overweight man who looked exactly how all those
mafia bosses in the films looked. He had an arrogant and aggressive aura with an
unpleasant face and I immediately hated him. How could someone as beautiful as Cami
come from a man like that? Her mother must be gorgeous.
“I see the whole Buccini family are as excited about this wedding as we are. How lovely that
you all wanted to be involved,” he smirked as he took a seat on the sofa closest to Cami and
Max. His beady eyes fell onto her and he looked her up and down slowly.
“Daughter. You look well. I trust your fiancé has been taking good care of you?” His tone
was almost sarcastic. He didn’t really care.
“Si papi,” Cami’s voice was a timid whisper and I watched her body shrivel just in his
presence. It made my blood boil.
“This is my son, Enzo. Underboss of the Aiani family.”
I quickly noticed a young, skinny man with dark blonde hair and blue eyes sitting next to
his father. He was wearing a grey suit that looked too big for him and he nodded his head
once to all of us in greeting. He couldn’t be more than nineteen years old. How was he an
underboss already?
“Cecilia, you are looking ravishing as always,” Francesco’s eyes roamed her body
suggestively as he didn’t try to hide his desire for her and I felt Gio’s body tense next to me,
but it was Sal who quickly changed the subject.
“There has been a change of plans.”
My eyes widened in disbelief as the words left his hard lips. Everyone else seemed just as
shocked as they stared at the Boss in anticipation.
“What change?” Francesco’s tone was dangerously low as he narrowed his eyes at Sal. The
air felt like it was sucked out of the atmosphere from the tension that surrounded us all.
“Camilla is not going to marry Giovanni. She is going to marry Maximus. Our Capo of
Trieste.”
Gio sat forwards instantly as he looked across at Max. Camila was beaming from ear to ear
as Max looked down at her with a smile, but her smile soon fell at her father’s outburst.
“Him? This thug? A CAPO? That was not the arrangement we made, Salvatore. You
promised my daughter would be the Boss’ wife! She is worth more than some worthless
Capo of Trieste!”
“Watch who you are raising your voice at Francesco,” Sal snarled from his position leaning
back in the armchair. Both bosses were in a stand-off, and everyone waited with bated
breath. “When Giovanni becomes Boss, Maximus will be underboss, so there is no
difference in positions for the future. The alliance still stands.”
What? I couldn’t believe my ears. Was Salvatore siding with Giovanni? Was he actually
allowing this to happen? Max to marry Camilla and Gio to keep his title?
“This is barbaric even for you, Salvatore. We had a fucking deal,” Francesco hissed. “My
daughter is not marrying a fucking capo!”
Abruptly, Francesco stood up and stormed towards Cami, grabbing her violently by the
wrist. “Get up you whore. We are leaving!”
The next few moments happened at such rapid speed that my eyes and brain had a hard
time keeping up. Maximus had pulled his gun out of his ripped jeans and had forced it into
Francesco’s temple. Enzo, the son, had his gun pointed at Max from over his father’s
shoulder and Gio had jumped up and was aiming his gun at Enzo.
The only man who hadn’t moved in the room was Sal as he lounged back in the armchair
with an amused expression at the scene before him.
“Get your fucking hands off her, you piece of shit!” Max growled at Francesco. My heart was
pounding in my chest as I looked at Cami’s terrified face.
“Who do you think you are speaking to, boy? I AM A FUCKING BOSS AND YOU ARE A DEAD
MAN.”
“Funny that… yet it is you who is one trigger away from your brains being plastered all
over the fucking wall, Boss.”
“Enzo will see to it that yours is next!” he hissed as he released Cami’s arm with a shove,
dropping her back to the sofa.
“And it would be fucking worth it,” Max snarled with a grin.
“Drop the gun,” Gio ordered Cami’s brother, whose eyes darted from Max to Gio and back
again. No one moved.
An amused, low chuckle erupted from Sal’s chest as he raised his tumbler to his mouth and
took a slow sip of brandy. His sinister eyes looked at each of the men carefully.
“Enough. Lower your weapons. No one is dying today.”
Gio was the first to slowly lower his gun and Enzo followed. Max pushed the barrel into
Francesco’s head once before dropping it back down and sitting next to Cami on the sofa.
He put a protective arm around her and pulled her to his side as Francesco clenched his jaw
and turned back to Sal.
“Now. I can see you are not happy with the new arrangement, Aiani. So, I am willing to
make an amendment. You can add one more thing to our contract that will only benefit
your family and not ours. Then we can call it even and move the fuck on with killing the
fucking Leones,” Sal’s tone had returned to its serious, intimidating manner. I caught
Cecilia’s eye as she hovered behind Sal’s chair and that nervous look had returned. My
stomach clenched with anticipation. Shit, this was all so intense. I mean I knew it would be.
These were the fucking mafia! But it had only been ten minutes and already we’d had guns
flying.
Francesco brushed down his suit before sitting back down on the sofa. He seemed to have
regained some control, but the fury still blazed behind his eyes.
“So, what will it be? 50% of all Columbian channel deals? Unlimited access to our best
soldiers?” Sal spoke in a bored tone as he rotated his tumbler in his hand, his shiny watch,
catching the rays of sunshine through the window.
It was fascinating. Watching these men in action. I was starting to realise that everything
Sal did was calculated and precise. Toni hovered in the background watching everyone and
everything like a secret assassin. A spy in the shadows.
Francesco sighed as he lifted one leg over the other, his polished shoe bouncing up and
down as he scanned the room. His eyes fell on my beautiful friend sitting next to me and he
cocked his head with a sly smile that made my skin crawl. Elenora. No.
“You have a niece? The stunning Elenora Buccini, isn’t it?” His voice had the venom of a
poisonous snake. I felt both Gio and Elle’s bodies tense either side of me. I grabbed her
hand in her lap protectively as I peered up at her expressionless face as she visibly gulped.
“My daughter is not part of this arrangement,” Cecilia stepped forwards, hissing.
“No, she wasn’t. But I think it is rather fitting now, don’t you? You have my daughter for
your… capo. I will take yours for my son.”
“No fucking way,” Giovanni growled as my mouth dropped open.
“You can’t! Sal!” Cecilia pleaded as she turned to her brother-in-law in desperation. He
lightly drummed his thick fingers against the arm of the chair as he seemed deep in
thought.
“It seems like a fair exchange.”
Giovanni jumped up from the sofa and I grabbed his hand to stop him from doing
something he would regret. Elle seemed frozen in a state of shock next to me.
“He is a fucking kid! My sister is not going to marry him or become part of your fucked up
family!” Gio bellowed.
“Salvatore! Please do something,” Cecilia cried as she fell to her knees at the side of his
chair, grabbing his arm.
“There is nothing I can do. If this is the price to pay for your son’s freedom, then this is what
must be done.” He said sternly without looking her way, and a lazy, wicked smirk grew on
Francesco’s face. No. She couldn’t go and live with that vile monster. The man- no boy
beside him- looked just as shocked and terrified at the prospect of suddenly being given a
wife.
“Over my dead body!” Giovanni shouted in rage.
“Then marry my daughter!” Francesco bellowed back.
“Stop!”
We all froze as we turned to look at Elle who was hiding her face beneath her hair as she
looked down at her lap. Her hands were shaking as she glanced up slowly at Giovanni and
then me. I could see the emotion in her eyes.
“I’ll do it. I will go with them.”
A Shocking Turn of Events
Cecilia
No. I can’t let this happen. Not Elle. Not that family. As I looked wide-eyed and pale-faced at
my eldest daughter and the pure terror in her eyes, I knew what I had to do. I was willing to
do it for Gio if it came to that and I was willing to do it for Elle. I knew what would happen
once she was handed over to that vulture. She would be treated like an object, used for
Francesco’s entertainment, and that wannabe Boss next to him wouldn’t be able to do a
thing about it. He was just a boy himself.
“Then we have a deal,” Francesco smirked, licking his lips as his eyes roamed Elenora’s
body and she gulped.
“My sister is going nowhere with you,” Giovanni growled, glaring at Francesco.
From my position kneeling on the floor next to Sal, I looked up at his expressionless face.
He could stop this. He was the only one who could stop this from happening without
bloodshed. He had all the power and he knew it. Yet, he was doing nothing. Because he
gained nothing.
My heart plummeted in my chest and my lips trembled with the intense emotions of guilt
and betrayal towards Vinny at what I was about to do.
“No. Stop.” I shouted, causing everyone to pause. My eyes were locked on Sal’s face as he
turned his distinguished features towards me. Holding his gaze, his eyes sparkled with
curiosity and hope as he realised what I was thinking; what I was about to say.
Leaning up to his ear, I whispered, “Smettila e io sarò tuo. (Stop this and I will be yours.)”
My voice wobbled on the last word and as I moved back from his ear, the look in his eyes
was a mix of disbelief and joy. I nodded slowly as a small smile curled at the corners of his
mouth and he reached for my hand, giving it a squeeze.
“Non c'è ritorno da questo. Sei sicuro? (There is no going back from this. Are you sure?)” He
grumbled under his breath but everyone in the room heard him and were watching us both
intensely, unaware of what had just been promised.
“Si,” I said with conviction. I had made up my mind. My happiness was a small price to pay
for my children.
The widest grin spread across Sal’s face and for a moment, I was transported back to the
night I first met him. A handsome young man who had the world at his feet.
Abruptly, he stood up and ran his hand through his silvery hair. He walked over to the mini
bar and poured two glasses of brandy. No one spoke or moved, they just watched him
intensely. The atmosphere in the room was so thick you could cut it with a knife. Strolling
back over to the group of us, he stopped in front of Francesco and offered him one of the
glasses.
Francesco gave Giovanni an evil, triumphant smirk as he took the glass from Sal and both
men raised their tumblers in the air.
“To our alliance,” Francesco stated before bringing the glass to his thin lips.
“No.” Sal said calmly but with clear venom laced through his tone. Francesco paused, his
bushy eyebrows tightening in confusion. “To your death.”
In a flash, Sal had whipped out his gun from under his suit jacket and shot Francesco
between the eyes.
I fell from my knees to the floor in shock as the girls screamed and Max and Gio jumped up
pointing their guns at Enzo who had turned as white as a sheet and cowered away from his
dead papi’s body slumped next to him on the sofa.
Silence took hold of the room once more as every one’s eyes bulged at Sal, who lowered his
gun and placed it back in his gun harness under his suit jacket. He rubbed his jaw as he
turned his attention to the young, shaken boy next to him.
“Congratulations are in order. Enzo Aiani. New Boss,” Sal smirked, and the boys' blue eyes
widened as he looked from Sal to Gio and Max who still had their guns aimed at his head.
“That is if you are willing to still hold onto your end of our original deal?”
Enzo visibly gulped as he realised he was being given two options. Form an alliance with
Sal or end up like his father.
Turning his head, he peered over at Cami, who was pale from the shock of watching her
father murdered in front of her very eyes, but to my surprise she didn’t seem upset. She
nodded slowly at her brother.
“Si. Formerò un'alleanza con te. (Yes. I will form an alliance with you.)”
“Clever boy. And I am assuming you will take care of this sticky situation with the
commission for me? As your first task of Boss,” Sal nodded towards the bloody head of
Francesco and took a sip from his Brandy.
Enzo nodded slowly. “He died in a drug cartel gone wrong.”
Sal beamed as he turned to look at Giovanni over his shoulder.
“I am impressed already. Guns down.” He nodded towards Toni, who pulled out some
paperwork from his briefcase.
“Let’s end this drama and sign the contracts. You are now a very rich and powerful young
man, my boy. But don’t you ever forget who gave it to you and who can just as easily take it
all away,” Sal snarled, his intimidating and hostile tone was back.
Enzo gulped down his fear but stood up slowly and reached his hand out to Sal, who shook
it with force.
Everyone else sat in silence and possibly unable to actually make a move as their brains
tried to piece together what exactly had just happened. Gio and Elle kept giving me glances
of concern which I refused to acknowledge. They would have questions. They want to know
what it is that I said to Sal to make him do what he just did.
I forced myself to stand up from the carpet and walk over to where the men were setting
up the contracts on the coffee table. This was my role. I had to witness every signature for
contracts between our family and business deals.
I watched Enzo’s hand shaking as he signed his name on the line his papi was supposed to.
The original deal was still in place except I had to change the marriage clause from
Giovanni to Maximus. Once everything was signed. Everyone started to filter out of the
room and our men were called in to dispose of Francesco’s body discreetly.
I stormed out of the living room alone, feeling an overwhelming sense of panic creeping up
on me when a firm hand grabbed my wrist.
“We need to talk,” Sal whispered slowly as I turned my head around.
“Yes. I think we all need to talk.” Giovanni hissed at both of us before storming away. “My
office. Now.”
Liv raced after him as they climbed the stairs and I turned back to Sal’s grinning face. My
stomach dropped. “It’s time he knew the truth, CeCe.”
He let go of my wrist and started up the stairs after my son as I stood frozen in the lobby.
My worst nightmare was coming true, and I could do nothing to stop it.
∞∞∞
Giovanni
What the fuck just happened?
I stormed into my office, feeling extremely on edge after that shit show. I mean there was a
part of me that was elated. We got what we wanted. I am keeping my position and no
longer have to marry Camilla. Max and Cami are going to be married and we keep the
original alliance that we need in order to take out the Leone’s. I should be shouting from
the rooftops how happy I am but I couldn’t. Something was going on between Sal and
mamma and it left me feeling cold.
Liv entered my office after me, pausing to watch me pacing the room, hand on hip. “I- I
don’t know what to say,” she spoke quietly.
“That shouldn’t have happened. Not that it is a bad thing. It’s fucking great for us but… Boss
would never have done that to save the alliance. Murdering a fucking boss is downright
risky even if it is meticulously planned and he just did that on impulse! Why? Why would
he do that?” I spoke loudly, trying to get all my thoughts out quickly before Sal and mamma
came up.
“I don’t know. Whatever your mamma said to him must have worked,” Liv said carefully as
she stepped towards me and put her hands on my arms to stop my frantic movements. I
pulled her into my chest, hugging her tightly to try and calm the uneasy feeling inside me.
“But what could she have possibly said for him to do that? For him to risk everything?”
Just at that moment, my uncle waltzed into my room with a gleeful look on his face which
faltered slightly when he saw me hugging Liv. She tried to pull out of my embrace but I held
her to me tighter. I needed her right now.
“What was that Boss?” I asked him directly as his dark eyes flickered from Liv back to me.
“I suppose it is out of the question to expect her to leave? This is a family matter after all.”
“She is family now. And I expect you to treat her as such. She stays.”
His eyes narrowed at my tone but his smile returned as mamma walked into the room
looking extremely nervous and pale.
“Fine. Shall we all sit down?” My zio walked over to an armchair and pointed at it for
mamma to take a seat. Her terrified eyes scanned his face and then mine before she silently
sat down next to him. My jaw ticked as I looked between them. Something was definitely
wrong here.
Releasing Liv, I perched on the edge of my desk with my arms folded as Liv did the same
next to me.
“Don’t look at me like that, Giovanni. I am still your Boss,” Sal growled when I could no
longer hide the anger and irritation on my face when no one spoke.
“I am just trying to understand what exactly made you think it would be a good idea to
shoot the Aiani Boss in my house?”
“What is the problem? You got what you wanted?” He shrugged.
“What if Enzo goes straight to the commission about this? What is stopping him?”
“He won’t. Because we have his sister and I have made it very clear that if he betrays us, I
will send her head back to him in a box before the commission can get to me.”
Liv gasped next to me, her hand slamming over her mouth and Sal chuckled.
“You better toughen up girly, if you want to be in this world.”
“But why kill him? Why not just try to negotiate a better deal?” I asked. I already knew the
answer but I wanted to hear him say it.
“You know why, Giovanni. He would never have given up on Elenora. And I would have
been backed into a corner seeing as you fucked up the first deal so royally. So I had no
choice.”
“But you were happy to hand her over,” I growled, the anger returning at the thought of my
little sister going to live with that family. With those men. “What changed?” I glanced over
at mamma accusingly, knowing she had something to do with his sudden change of
mindset.
The look my uncle gave mamma made my blood run cold. “Cecilia, do you want to tell him
or shall I?”
Mamma’s eyes widened as she fiddled with her fingers on her lap. She looked so small and
vulnerable suddenly and I stood up straight. “Mamma? What is going on?”
“I- Sal and I are going to be together now.”
I froze. What did she just say? My eyes roamed her face to my zio’s who looked like the cat
that got the fucking cream. “What?”
“You heard her, Giovanni. Your mamma and I are in love and we will be getting married.”
Even mamma’s head snapped up in surprise at his words. I couldn’t believe this. This had to
be some kind of sick joke.
“We will all be a proper family now. Like we always should have been,” Sal said as he
smiled at mamma, who looked like she wanted to cry or run away.
I snapped. “This is a joke, right? You are fucking with me? You can’t be serious?”
Sal stood up quickly, his eyes darkening with fury. “I am deadly serious Giovanni, so calm
the fuck down.”
“You are my uncle! She was married to your brother! What the fuck is going on?” I bellowed
as mamma flinched in her chair and Liv gripped my bicep in an attempt to calm me, but I
was too far gone.
No one spoke for a few moments, and I held my uncle’s stern gaze in challenge. “That is not
entirely true, Giovanni.”
“Sal… no! Please don’t,” mamma whimpered as the tears started rolling down her face.
“He deserves to know the truth, CeCe.”
“Know what?!”
“Non sono tuo zio. Sono tuo papi. (I am not your uncle. I am your father.)”
The ground crumbled from beneath my feet.
Past Mistakes
Cecilia
“Gio!” I cried as the look of complete shock and betrayal engraved into every one of his
handsome features.
“Is it true?” he hissed, stepping towards me.
“I- I don’t know. It might be. Gio, I am so sorry! Please let me expl-“
“You have had 29 years to explain!!” He erupted, his nostrils flaring and eyes burning with
so much hurt as he glared down at me. He fled from the room and Liv gave me a
sympathetic look before she ran out after him.
Turning my attention to the man that had just ruined my life, I glared at him with every
ounce of hatred my body possessed.
“How dare you! How dare you do that to him! To me!” I screamed, standing up from the
chair to run from him. I couldn’t be anywhere near this man right now.
He slammed his hand on the door before I could get to it and blocked me in. “It is time he
knew, Cecilia. Now we are going to be together, he had a right to know.”
“No! I don’t even know if you are his father, Salvatore! How could you do that?”
“He is my son! I have known it from the moment I laid eyes on him. I am sorry it had to
come out the way it did, but you could have changed all of this a long time ago! I am sick
and tired of waiting, Cecilia. You are mine now and Giovanni is my heir. I will give you some
space to calm down, but then I will send for you. You will be moving in with me and we will
be married by the end of the week.”
He opened the door swiftly and made his way down the stairs where Toni was waiting for
him in the lobby. I raced to my bedroom and locked the door before falling to my knees in
despair. I don’t know how long I stayed there, curled in a ball on the floor, sobbing. But
when the tears had dried up and emptiness took hold, I pulled myself up and walked into
the bathroom. Holding up my fragile body by placing my hands either side of the sink, I
stared at the reflection of a broken and defeated woman. I had no strength left in my bones;
no tears left to cry.
This was all my doing. This was all my fault.
30 years ago…
“Congratulazioni CeCe!” my friend Nadia raised her champagne flute in the air and clinked
her glass with mine as I beamed back at her. I had just secured my very job at a new law firm
and I have to admit, I had never been prouder of myself!
“Grazie!” I took a sip of my champagne as my eyes scanned the packed club that Nadia had
dragged me to celebrate. The fluorescent beams were showering the bodies that were
grinding and jumping about on the dance floor and I felt suddenly over dressed in my work
suit while all these other twenty-something girls strutted around in their skimpy dresses.
“You should have let me go home and change first!” I shouted over the music to my friend who
was also dressed in suitable clubwear.
“No! You look great! Sexy and sophisticated! I wish I could wear suits at work,” she whined.
I chuckled and shook my head. Nadia worked in a little corner coffee shop and had done since
we finished university. She was a bit of a wanderer and still didn’t know which direction to
take her life. Unlike me, who had always had a carefully mapped out plan since I was five.
I placed my hand over the top of my glass as Nadia attempted to top it up. I was in a good
mood today. No, I was feeling incredible! And when I feel this way, I tend to go a little crazy
after a few drinks. It’s like a button on me is pressed and I think to hell with everything and
just go for it. Which is a lot of fun but can also get me in a lot of trouble which I really do not
need now. I was trying to be taken seriously as a newly qualified lawyer.
“Come on! At least finish the bottle with me,” she pleaded and I tilted my head.
“Urgh. Fine.”
She whooped with glee as she poured more champagne into my glass. That was the moment
my night changed. Over her shoulder, I could see a swarm of people suddenly acting quite
bizarrely, as if a celebrity had just walked in or something. When they all parted, I saw what
all the fuss was about. A group of very attractive and sexy men all dressed in black with bulky
bodies were pushing through the crowd with serious expressions. They were clearly protecting
someone important. As they came closer to our table, my eyes fixed on a striking man with jet
black hair, high cheekbones and dark eyes between them all. He looked dangerous. He looked
like the ultimate bad boy. Just my type. No. I was trying to change. After all the terrible failed
relationships of my past, I had promised myself to stay away from the bad boys. But I have to
admit, this one was pretty tempting.
He was wearing a very well fitted, tailored suit and rings on every finger. As he walked past
our table, his eyes locked with mine and my stomach flipped. Yes. Sexy as hell. He never took
his eyes off me as he walked past with an arrogant swagger, until he disappeared with all
those men behind a black curtain at the corner of the room. I turned my attention back to
Nadia, who was watching me with an amused expression, wriggling her eyebrows.
“What?” I feigned innocence as I took off my suit jacket and threw it over the back of the chair.
“I saw the eye fucking that was just going on. Don’t even try to deny it!”
I rolled my eyes and downed my champagne.
“Let’s dance!” I shouted, pulling her off her chair by her arm to change the subject. We spent
the next hour or so dancing to upbeat music and drinking. I could feel myself getting looser
and I was past the point of trying to be my best version of myself. I was having a good time
and so I should! I had earned it. Wearing my grey, tight pencil skirt, cream silk shirt and heels,
I stood out like a saw thumb in this crowd, but I didn’t care. I had freed my long blonde hair
from its bun and undid some of my buttons on my shirt to give a little glimpse of cleavage in
my lacy white bra. That would have to do.
“Signorina, per favore, vieni con me, (Miss, please, come with me)” A deep voice from behind
me on the dance floor caused me to turn around. There was one of those huge, muscular men
all dressed in black with a stern expression.
“Come mai? Chi sei? (Why? Who are you?)” I snapped back, looking him up and down while I
carried on dancing to the music.
“Il mio capo vorrebbe parlare con te.” He told me his boss wanted to speak to me and I quickly
made the connection that the sexy stranger I had been ogling was who he was referring to.
Excitement bubbled inside me mixed with the alcohol and I knew my new good girl act had
gone out the window.
“Bene. Portami da lui. (Okay. Take me to him.)”
Waving Nadia goodbye, which she barely noticed, with her arms wrapped around some guy, I
followed the beefcake towards the black curtain I’d seen them disappear behind earlier. As he
pushed it aside, I found myself in a private room with casino tables, a bar, dancers on poles
and lots of little booths with sofas and tables. There weren’t many people there. Maybe around
twenty, all men apart from the dancers.
As I walked towards the end booth with my guide, I felt a lot of provocative eyes on me but I
held my chin up higher. Stopping in front of a table, there were two men leaning back on the
sofa in the booth, smoking cigars. One I didn’t recognise and the other was Mr dark and
dangerous. His brown eyes raked down my body hungrily until they came back to my face. He
didn’t smile or show any emotion as he continued to stare, taking deep drags from his cigar.
I became impatient. He was the one who called me here after all. “Your friend here said you
wanted to talk to me. So, are you going to speak or shall I go back to enjoying my night?” I
snapped, folding my arms across my chest.
Amusement danced across his molten eyes as he studied me for a little longer. I huffed loudly,
about to walk away when he boomed, “Tutti fuori! (Everyone out!)”
I stood still as I watched every single person in the private boudoir leave immediately. Wow.
This guy had some power or at least authority over these men.
“Me included?” I asked, curving my eyebrow up at him once we were alone.
He placed his cigar down in the ashtray and stood up swiftly, taking a few menacing steps
towards me, so he was towering over me. He wasn’t extremely tall but was at least a head
above me. I stood my ground, showing he didn’t intimidate me even though he kind of did. A
small smile played on his lips when I didn’t move or break his penetrating gaze.
“Donna grintosa (feisty woman),” he smirked as he picked up a strand of my blonde hair in his
fingers and flicked it over my shoulder. “What is your name?”
“CeCe. What is yours?”
He licked his lips slowly as he made me wait with anticipation. “Salvatore, but you can call me
Sal.”
“How kind of you,” I teased, and his smile grew.
He lifted his rough hand and grabbed my jaw in a firm grip, brushing his thumb over my
bottom lip, smudging my red lipstick. I stood frozen. I would never let a man touch me like this
normally, but there was something about him that made me want more. He was the scariest
yet most attractive man I had ever met and just that action had my core tightening and body
aching with arousal.
“I have been waiting for a woman like you for a long time,” his deep voice and the proximity of
his face to mine, had my mind spinning, but I wouldn’t give in to him so easily. I guessed he
was a man who liked a bit of cat and mouse.
“And what makes you think the wait is over?” I bantered back and he chuckled deeply.
“Because you will be in my bed within the next hour.”
I scoffed loudly, pulling my jaw from out of his grasp. “You are pretty sure of yourself, Sal.
What if I am not interested?”
I was. I can’t deny that my mind was racing with thoughts of how good he might be in bed.
“We both know that is a lie.” He ran his ringed finger from my lips down my throat and chest,
until he reached the swell of my breasts. My breathing became laboured as he moved my silk
blouse to the side to reveal my lacy bra. “From the moment I saw you tonight, I knew you
would be mine.”
I narrowed my eyes at his words. “I belong to no one.”
His eyes darted up from my breast to my face and I gulped at the intensity of his heated glare.
“You are mine if I say you are mine. Just give me one night to prove it to you.”
He ripped open my blouse, the buttons popping off and I gasped as he cupped one of my boobs
and flicked his thumb over my nipple that was concealed under the lace material. He leaned
down and tugged my lower lip with his teeth and I moaned. I couldn’t help it. I knew sex with
this dangerous stranger would be the thrill of a lifetime. And didn’t I deserve a reward for my
success at work today?
“One night?” I breathed against his lips.
“We’ll see,” he mumbled back before weaving his fingers into my hair and claiming my lips.
And I gave in to him. For one night only. I was Salvatore’s.
After my one-night stand with Sal, I snuck out of the hotel room without leaving any contact
information. It had been an amazing night filled with raw and passionate sex but that was all
I wanted from this man. He was bad news, and I could tell he was extremely dangerous.
Someone that I didn’t need in my life or to ever see again.
A few days later, I walked into the small interview room in the police station, where my new
client was being detained. I paused when I saw his muscular frame, bulging muscles and thick
black hair from the back. My heart flipped in my chest as for a moment I thought it might
have been Sal. But I knew it wasn’t. This man was bigger, taller, more muscular and a strange
tingle of anticipation danced across my skin just on seeing his back profile. Squaring my
shoulders and lifting my chin, I strutted into the cold, unwelcoming interrogation room to face
my first ever client. I worked for the local law firm and, as it was his right, he was allowed a
civil court representative as well as his personal lawyer. Looking around the room though, his
lawyer had not arrived yet, as only one police officer stood on guard by the door.
The click of my heels echoing against the walls, caused him to turn his face towards me for the
first time and, honest to God, my heart skipped a beat before it came alive with instant
excitement. His swarthy features flickered with surprise as he took in my body, dressed in a
formal pantsuit and blonde hair tied up in a high ponytail. He had the darkest olive-black
eyes, tanned skin, a slightly dimpled square chin and roughly carved cheekbones. He was the
most devilishly handsome creature I had ever laid eyes on.
I buried my instant attraction to this man deep down in the pits of my soul. I would not turn
into some love-sick puppy on my first real case. I was a professional and I wasn’t going to let
some sex-God bad boy derail me.
I pulled out the metal chair on the other side of the table and took a seat, placing my leather
briefcase on the table. I could feel his intense stare as I clicked it open and pulled out my files.
“Good afternoon, Mr Buccini. My name is Ms Tessaro and I have been assigned by the court to
represent you.”
“I already have a lawyer. Though now I am starting to think I may have the wrong one,” he
flirted, causing a flutter of butterflies in my stomach.
“Well, now you have two. Which I think you are going to need all the help you can get with
these charges.”
A slow, deliberate smile made him look even more dashing and I had to glance away from his
face quickly, so he didn’t catch the blush that was spreading up my chest and onto my cheeks.
What on earth was wrong with me? I do not let men affect me like that!
“Do you know why you are here?” I began in the most professional tone I could muster.
“Hmmm. I think there was a mention of murder or something,” he replied coolly, his voice a
deep husk. He said it as if the idea was amusing to him. Murder…Cecilia…did you not hear
that?
“Si, Mr Buccini. You have been arrested on suspicion of first-degree murder. This is a very
serious charge.” I added when I saw he was still smiling as I spoke. Irritation brewed inside me
as I realised he wasn’t taking any of this seriously in the slightest.
He sat back on his chair, spreading his thick legs out lazily and rested his bound hands on the
steel surface of the table between us. My eyes flickered down to his masculine and powerful
hands as he started to drum his fingers on the table in a hypnotic motion. It drew my
attention so much that for a moment I forgot what I was about to say.
“You don’t seem the lawyer type to me,” he said with a smirk, his dark eyes twinkling.
I narrowed mine to him. “What do you mean by that?”
“Just that you take me as someone who likes to live dangerously perhaps… Life is boring you,
isn't it, Ms Tessaro? You are looking for some excitement, that’s why you are here representing
me,” he teased arrogantly.
I glared at him. “No Mr Buccini. I do not like to live dangerously. That is why I am sitting on
this side of the table, on the right side of the law, unlike you.”
“Yet you are happy to be representing a man who is accused of being on the wrong side of it?
You should know nothing's ever what it seems. Sometimes it is fun to be naughty,” he smirked.
“So, you are- “
“Innocent until proven guilty,” he interrupted, his heated gaze flickered down to my cleavage
in my shirt and then up to my lips. Just that obvious seduction made my body temperature
rise.
“Are you saying you are innocent of these charges?” I asked, trying to get back on track and
steer the conversation away from me.
He sighed impatiently as he tapped his knuckles on the table. “I did not kill the drug lord.”
“But I am guessing you know who did?” I raised an eyebrow at him as he leaned forward on
the table. Suddenly, I had a waft of an earthy and musky scent that made my mouth water. His
cologne.
“What is your name?”
I blinked back at his dismissal of my question and inappropriateness of his. “I have already
told you my name. It's Ms Tessaro."
“Your first name.”
“Why is that important?” I asked with irritation. Urgh, this man was infuriating.
“I’d just like to know the name of my future wife so I can inform my family when I get home,”
he grinned, flashing his pearly white teeth. My eyes widened and I looked away from him.
“Mr Buccini. Please can we get back to- “
“Vincenzo.”
“Excuse me?”
“My name is Vincenzo. Vinny or Vin for short. But you can call me whatever you like…”
“Well, I will call you Mr Buccini then,” I snarked, and he chuckled deeply from his chest. I
squeezed my legs together at the erotic sound.
“As you wish. But I will call you angel until you tell me your name.”
He was enjoying this. Teasing me. I huffed loudly in annoyance and picked up the papers from
the table, trying to find the information I needed him to sign.
Suddenly, the door opened and a chubby man in a tailored suit strolled in looking a little
dishevelled and rushed. “Scuse! I was stuck in traffic!” Two more police officers filed in behind
him and my eyebrows furrowed in confusion. “Why is he cuffed? Free him at once,” the stout
man ordered, pushing his glasses up the bridge of his nose.
The police officers walked over to Vincenzo and took the cuffs off his wrists as he smirked at
me from across the table.
“Wait. What’s going on? Who are you?” I asked, frantically.
“I’m Alonzo. Mr Buccini’s lawyer. He is free to go.”
Vincenzo stood up slowly, his huge frame suddenly feeling rather intimidating from where I
was sitting, so I stood up to match his position.
“I don’t understand.” I said quickly. This was my first case. He was accused of murder. How
could he go free?
“I presume you are a civil court lawyer? There has been a misunderstanding and the charges
have been dropped. Mr Buccini had nothing to do with this murder. You will no longer be
needed,” Alonzo said to me dismissively with a nod of the head and turned to walk from the
room. I couldn’t believe it. My first case and it wasn’t even a case! It was a complete waste of
my time.
I watched as the insanely hot but frustrating client in front of me gave me a cheeky wink and
strolled out of the room as a free man. I huffed loudly and grabbed my notes, shoving them in
my briefcase and stomping out in a rage. I was so looking forward to having this assigned to
me and now I looked like a fool.
Once I walked out of the station through the entrance doors, I stood on the pavement and
closed my eyes, inhaling a deep breath.
“You seem upset, angel? Anyone would think you wanted me locked up,” that deep rumble of
vocal perfection made me spin on my heels and lose my balance. I stumbled forwards but
before I fell to the ground, I felt strong arms wrapping around my body and pulling me into a
rock-hard chest. That intoxicating scent invaded my nose and I glanced up in shock at the face
of Vincenzo Buccini.
“Are you making fun of me?” I snapped, trying to wriggle out of his grasp, but he held me to
him tighter, causing my heart to race.
“Oh angel, I would never dare.” He smirked down at me. Suddenly, his face turned serious as
his ink-spilled eyes bore into mine.
“I am no angel, Vinny.” I looked up at him through my thick eyelashes. I couldn’t ignore the
euphoric feeling of saying his name out loud. I guess he was no longer my client and a free
man. I might as well flirt back. He licked his lips and held his bottom lip between his teeth,
which made me so turned on in the middle of a police car park, that it should have been
illegal.
“I didn’t think you were. But I am no angel either,” he lifted his hand and grabbed my ponytail
in his fist, pulling it down and forcing my face up to his. I gasped as my lips parted and
breathing hitched from the look of desire in his eyes.
“You don’t scare me,” I whispered, keeping my eyes locked with his.
“Then why can I feel your heart beating so fast?” he husked, lowering his face and brushing his
lips lightly against mine. My eyes fluttered shut and then opened again when he pulled back. I
wanted more.
“Because I want you to kiss me.”
His chest heaved up and down in laboured breaths at my words and his expression was so
serious and brooding, it made me want to moan.
“If I kiss you angel, no one else will ever kiss those lips again.”
I stared up at him as I realised what meaning his words held. He would claim me. Never allow
me to be with another man. And for some reason, I knew they weren’t just words. He meant
them. I did the only thing I had ever been so sure of in my life.
I kissed him.
Staring back at my reflection in the mirror thirty years on, I couldn’t bear to look at myself.
I did this. I slept with both Vinny and Sal within the same week and by the time I found out
I was pregnant I was head over heels in love with Vinny and I freaked out. The baby could
have been either of theirs but as I had only had sex with Sal one night, I hedged my bets on
Gio being Vinny’s. Sal of course has never dropped it. He has convinced himself from the
moment he heard I was pregnant that the baby was his.
I refused to acknowledge it as a possibility. For the first year or two of Vinny and my
relationship, Sal made my life hell. He would pester me and constantly try to get me alone.
Tell me he loved me at any chance he got. That he would give it all up, this life, if I would
run away with him. But I refused every single time. I loved Vinny. Vinny was the one I
chose. I was always surprised that Sal hid what happened between us from Vinny. I think
he liked that he and I had a secret together. I wanted to tell Vinny, but I knew it would rip
the family apart. Vinny hated to think of me being with another man and it would have
killed him if he had known I had slept with Sal even if it was before I had met him. So, I
waited. Eventually, Sal stopped trying. When their father died and he became Boss, he
threw himself into work and kept his distance from me. It was a huge relief. I knew the
reason he paid special attention to Gio growing up and gave him special treatment
compared to his other nieces and nephews was because a part of him believed he may have
been his son, but we never spoke about it. He never brought it up. Not until today. Not until
right now.
And now my dirty secret was out there. Sal had everything he wanted. Me. His son. The
family. And what did I have left?
I opened the bathroom cabinet and stared at the pill bottles that contained my sanity.
Grabbing them on impulse, I flicked the lids off and poured the pills down the toilet before
flushing them away.
If Sal wanted me, he could have me. But I wasn't going to make it easy for him. He should be
careful what he wishes for.
Deep Dive
Olivia
It’s been nearly two days since Sal dropped that bomb on Gio and I am starting to become
really concerned about him. He has gone into a dark place in his mind and closed himself
off completely to everyone, including me. He’s still there in body but there is a vacant and
cold look in his eyes every time I speak to him. He is refusing to speak to Cecilia and find
out what the hell all this means and how it could possibly be true. He is burying his head in
the sand and refusing to deal with it. Instead, he has thrown himself back into work, his
physio (which at least that is a good thing) and swimming. He barely slept last night and
when I woke up at 5am he wasn’t in bed.
Sighing heavily as I gazed out of Sani’s bedroom window at him doing lengths in the pool
which I am sure was against his doctor’s orders, I felt helpless. He was hurting and I had
tried to be soft, patient and understanding. I have tried waiting for him to want to talk
about this but how long was he going to push everyone away for?
“Olivia?” A nervous, vulnerable voice from the door caused me to spin on my feet to see
Cecilia wearing a black floor length dress. She looked just as awful as her son did. The bags
under her eyes showed her lack of sleep and the dullness of her usually vibrant skin was
concerning. But again, it was her eyes that spoke volumes. They were only full of sorrow. I
was starting to realise that all the Buccinis had that gift. They spoke with their big, brown
eyes.
“Cecilia, hi. How are you doing?” I spoke softly as I walked towards her. I hadn’t seen her
since that day in Gio’s office. She had locked herself away in her wing and said the only
person she would speak to was Gio but of course he never went to see her.
She stared at me as if I had asked the most ridiculous question in the world.
“Sorry,” I sighed, “Of course you are probably feeling as shit as Gio is.”
Her dull eyes suddenly sparked with anger.
“I do not need you or anyone else telling me how shit I have made my son feel, thank you
very much!” She snapped at me and I cowered back from the shock of her outburst. She had
never raised her voice at me before. She had been stern and intimidating, sure. But never
like this.
I didn’t move and continued to watch her carefully as she sighed loudly and ran one hand
through her blonde hair, pulling at it slightly by her scalp. She was not acting herself at all
but after everything, I suppose that wasn't a surprise.
“Sorry,” she muttered under her breath.
“No, I'm sorry Cecilia. I didn’t mean it to sound the way it did. I wasn’t blaming you, I- “
“You should blame me. This is all my fault,” The anger had dissolved and her bottom lip
trembled with emotion. She was all over the place.
“Cecilia. Shall we sit down? The children are in the playroom with Marco and Cami and I
was just tidying their bedrooms so I have time to talk if you want to?”
She looked around her youngest son’s room as if she suddenly realised where she was. She
walked over to his bed and picked up his very loved teddy that he slept with every night
and breathed it in before slumping down on his racing car bed. I strolled over to her and
took a seat.
“I met Sal first. A night out. It was a stupid one-night stand,” she started, her voice muffled
by the teddy she was clinging to. She lifted her head up and inhaled deeply. “I never
expected to see him again. A few days later, I met Vinny and it was love at first sight. I know
that sounds cliché but it was. The instant connection and chemistry I had with him just
made me want to throw away everything I had ever known to be with him. We slept
together the same day we met. I know what that sounds like. Sleeping with two men
without really knowing either of them but I wasn’t always like that. They both had this
power of me. Over my body and my emotions.”
I nodded slowly, knowing exactly what she meant. I am not even sure how I managed to
hold off from sleeping with Giovanni for so long!
“By the time I found out who Vinny really was and made the choice to stay, I was madly in
love. I was then introduced to his family and was shocked to walk into a room with Sal
sitting on the sofa smoking a cigar and drinking a brandy. I always remember the look on
his face when he saw me again. He thought I had found him. He’d been obsessed with
looking for the girl who left him in a hotel room apparently. He jumped up with a beaming
smile which soon fell when Vinny put his arm around me and introduced me as his
girlfriend. Sal and I never told Vinny we had slept together but it didn’t stop Sal from
wanting more. By the time I realised I was pregnant, I was in too deep with Vinny. I was
head over heels in love with him and I was scared I would lose him if I told him the truth. I
prayed the doctor would say I was early on in the pregnancy but when I found out I was
already two months, I could have cried. The dates matched the same time I met the
brothers. I had no idea who the father was. But I lied. I told Sal Gio was Vinny’s for certain. I
stuck to that story for 29 years. But clearly Sal never believed it.”
I reached for her hand and looked at her beautiful side profile as she stared at the floor. Her
lip trembled as she spoke about what had caused all of this. I really felt for her. She did
what she thought was best in a difficult situation. Knowing how these mafia men are about
their women, I knew she did it to protect her relationship and the family. If she had told
him the truth, it would have torn the brothers apart. But unfortunately, it was Gio who was
now suffering the consequences of her decision.
“I am sorry Cecilia. That you have had to carry the weight of that secret for so long.”
“I haven’t. I have convinced myself that Vinny is Gio’s father. Even if it isn’t by blood, Vinny
was still his father. He raised him. He loved him. He was the best role model Gio ever had,”
tears fell from her face and she quickly wiped them away. She suddenly pulled herself
together and sat up straight. “I know he doesn’t want to speak to me. So, I came to tell you
that I am leaving. I am moving in with Sal.”
My eyes widened at hearing this. After the shock confession that Sal could possibly be Gio’s
dad, I had completely forgotten that Cecilia and Sal had announced they were together. Is
this really what she wanted?
“Cecilia, I hope you don’t think I am stepping out of line here but I have to ask. Do you love
him? Salvatore?”
She chuckled sadly and shook her head. “I will never love another man after Vinny.”
“Then why are you agreeing to this? Why are you going to be with him?”
“Oh you poor, naïve girl,” she stood up suddenly and I frowned. Her mood had changed
again and she now seemed cold and angry. “Life is all about sacrifices Olivia. Sal will be here
to get me in two hours. Look after my children for me.”
My mouth dropped open at her words as she strutted towards the door. “What? Wait! You
are leaving Sani and Raya here?”
She turned quickly to look back at me and once again her face showed sudden sadness and
intense emotion. “Yes. They will be better off here with you all. Where I am going… I will
not be able to care for them.”
She stormed out the room, leaving me standing speechless. How? How can she leave her
young children to go and live with that man? What did she mean, she wouldn’t be able to
care for them?
I rubbed my forehead as I felt a headache coming on. This family was something else. There
was never just one calm day in this house. Making up my mind, that enough was enough
and Gio needed to speak to his mother before she left at least, I made my way downstairs
and out to the swimming pool.
He was floating on the water, head over the edge of the pool with his eyes shut when I
stomped out onto the decking. He squinted open one eye against the sun to see who was
rampaging towards him and shut it again when he saw me. Charming.
“Giovanni. Enough. You need to speak to your mother before it’s too late.”
“I don’t need to do anything,” he said in a bored tone. I folded my arms across my chest. He
was stubborn but I was too and I don’t give up.
“Cecilia is leaving in two hours. Sal is forcing her to move in with him.”
He didn’t move or speak, just continued to lie in the pool with his eyes closed.
“She told me what happened thirty years ago. If you go and speak to her, she will tell you
too.”
“I don’t want to know. How can I believe anything she says to me? She has lied to me my
whole life.”
I scoffed loudly which caused his eyes to flicker open and jaw clench. “Gio! I get that you are
feeling betrayed and angry and you have every right to feel that way. This is so unfair on
you but don’t you want to know the truth? Can’t you at least hear her out before she
leaves?”
“No.”
“Fine then you will listen to me. Your mum met Sal on a night out. They had a drunken one-
night stand and she didn’t even know who he was.” Gio abruptly jumped out of the pool,
pulling his body up onto the side and grabbed a towel. He tried to storm away from me but
I continued. “It was before she met your dad! Before she fell in love with him.”
“Which dad?” He snapped back at me over his shoulder. I grabbed his bicep to try and stop
him from hurtling away from me again. He shrugged me off aggressively and I lost my
footing. My arms were flapping as I stumbled at the edge of the pool but it was too late. I
was falling. Fully clothed, in my little dress, straight back into the water.
“Liv!” I heard Gio shout before I went under. I sunk down to the bottom and started to kick
up but felt a strong arm around my waist hoisting me through the water to the surface at
speed. When we broke through, I inhaled the air sharply and wiped my eyes.
“Are you okay?” His voice was full of panic as I blinked back at him, while we treaded the
water to keep us afloat. His arm was still around my waist holding me to his naked torso. I
burst out laughing at the serious expression on his face. Did he think I couldn’t swim?
His face softened slightly when he saw I wasn’t harmed, and a smile stretched across it for
the first time in days.
“I can swim, you know! You didn’t need to dive in and save me,” I giggled as he pulled us
over to the shallow end where we could touch the floor.
“How was I supposed to know that? I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to push you,” he said with pain
in his eyes.
I wrapped my arms around his neck and kissed his lips. He froze momentarily but as I
sensually licked his lips with my tongue seeking access to his mouth he relaxed and gave
into the kiss. It was slow and sweet. Everything it needed to be to get him to drop this
concrete wall he had built up around himself. When I felt like he had truly let go, I broke
away and gazed into his eyes.
“Come back to me Gio,” I whispered against his lips. He closed his eyes and rested his damp
forehead against mine. “I love you and I want to help you but you have to let me in.”
I wrapped my legs around his waist as his hands roamed my back under the water and he
sighed.
“I know. I’ve been a dick. I just… It is a lot.”
I pulled my head away from his and stroked his dripping black hair out of his eyes. “It is.
But we can deal with it together.”
“Okay.” He huffed. “Tell me.”
I told him everything Cecilia had said to me and I also mentioned that she didn’t seem
herself; that her emotions were all over the place. He listened intently and his dark
eyebrows tensed with concern. I knew deep down he loved his mother more than life and
he worried about her. “She is hurting too, Gio. Just don’t let her leave here thinking you hate
her.”
He nodded slowly. “I won’t.”
“So, what are you going to do? You know that what Sal is saying might not be true. And
even if it is, Vinny is still the father that raised and loved you. Nothing will ever change
that.”
He leaned his head back and stared up at the sky. “I know. It’s just I always wondered… I
always felt torn between those two powerful men in my life. A part of me has always
connected to Sal, the darker part. What if I am more like him than I thought? What if he is
really my father?”
“You are still you, Gio. This doesn’t change who you are. You don’t even need to find out if
you don’t want to. Vinny raised you as his own whether you were his biological son or not.”
“I need to know,” he whispered. “But I am afraid of what it will do to mamma if I get a
paternity test.”
“It is your choice Gio. She will respect it because she loves you.”
He stared into my eyes and I felt my heart ache for him. For what he was going through.
“Thank you bambola. You keep me sane.”
“And you drive me crazy! But I wouldn’t have it any other way,” I smirked as he kissed me
again.
Sugar And Salt
Giovanni
Wrapping a towel around my waist and then a huge one around Olivia’s body, I noticed
her dress sticking to her tempting curves, making me horny as hell. I have been in a bad
place the last few days, so we haven't even been physical. I switched my emotions off. I
couldn’t deal with the betrayal and pain of my mamma's deceit but also the soul-crushing
thought that my papi was not in fact mine.
I have always looked up to Sal for the way he conducts business. He is a force to be
reckoned with and is a shrewd and ruthless Boss which in turn, has made this family the
most successful Mala Del Brenta, but I have never seen him as a father figure. He has taught
me how to kill a man without allowing them to scream. He has taught me how to close the
most savage of deals to ensure our family always comes out on top. He has taught me how
to provoke fear and respect from men. But he did not teach me how to ride my bike. He did
not teach me how to respect and love the women in my life. He did not teach me how to
own my mistakes and learn from them. My papi did that.
Liv was right. Even if I was not Vinny's son by blood, I was still his son. I still loved him as
my papi. Nothing would change that. But I wanted to know. I had to know if Sal was my
father. He was convinced he was. And I didn’t like that he could use that to his advantage. I
wanted to be in the know. I wasn’t sure what I would even do with the information if he
was my father. I would most likely keep it to myself, but at least I would know.
There was one thing that was bothering me more than anything about all of this though. I
could understand that Sal and mamma may have had a past. But how can they consider a
future together? It wasn’t right. It was an extreme betrayal to his brother and mamma’s
love for Vinny. I witnessed their love. Their marriage. It was true and pure. It has only been
two years since papi’s death and she is considering moving in with Sal? His brother? It
didn’t make sense. Mamma would never do this unless she had good reason. I did need to
put my own feelings aside for the moment and get to the bottom of this. Mamma would
never leave Raya and Sani like that.
Once Liv and I reached our bedroom, we dried and dressed quickly so I could catch mamma
before Sal arrived. Liv sat on the end of the four-poster bed in a pair of shorts and cami as
she towel dried her hair. I was pulling on a clean black shirt when I noticed her biting her
lower lip with a pensive expression on her face.
“What are you thinking about?” I shouted from the dressing room.
Her eyes darted up to my face with a flash of panic and she shook her head. Oh hell no. I
had to know now. Strolling towards her as I did up my buttons, I lifted her chin to look up
at me. “Liv?”
She sighed deeply, worry and turmoil were evident on her pretty face.
“There are things I want to say but I am not sure if I should… everything considered.”
My eyebrows pulled into the bridge of my nose as I frowned. “No secrets, remember? There
is nothing you can’t say to me.”
“You have to promise you won’t do anything rash… don’t fly off the handle Gio,” she
warned. Well, that was like poking a bear with an iron rod. I was instantly on high alert and
my heart rate increased. “Forget it,” she muttered when she saw the look on my face. She
tried to stand up and walk away but I pulled her back to me.
“Olivia. You know I will not let this go now. So, save us both the hassle and just tell me.”
“Okay…” she huffed back down on the edge of the bed. I folded my arms across my chest
and stared at her expectantly. “I hate Salvatore.”
I couldn’t help it. I burst out laughing. Was that it? Not many people liked him, so it wasn’t
exactly a shock. “Well, I already knew you weren’t his biggest fan,” I joked, but her face
stayed rigid.
“I don’t trust him and I like to think I am a good judge of character. I know he is your…
family and I hate to speak badly of people you love, but he is not a good man Gio, and I
think you should be wary of his intentions.”
I smiled as I reached out and stroked her cheek. “Okay bambola. I am under no illusion Sal
is a good man. He doesn’t try to be. He is what he is but he does care for this family in his
own way. But you don’t have to like him.”
Anger burned red hot in her eyes and my smile faded. She pushed my hand away from her
face. “Don’t patronise me, Giovanni! You are not listening to what I am saying. I can see the
signs… I can feel it… it is not right.”
I frowned as I saw how stressed she was getting over this. “What isn’t right?”
“Sal. The way he is with Cecilia, for example. He is… he acts… like Henry did with me.”
I froze. “What?” My voice came out as a low growl. What was she talking about? I had seen
Sal around mamma all my life and he had never seemed hostile or manipulative in any way.
Yes, he was protective of her and they argued now and again, but mamma argued with
everyone.
“He has a hold over her, Gio. Not a healthy one. I asked her if she loved him and she said she
would never love another man after Vinny. So why is she doing this? Why is she going with
him? It can’t be out of choice. He must be forcing her in some way. He is manipulating her
and controlling her. The way I have seen him look at her… it’s unnerving. I think he is
borderline obsessed with her. And then there was the night of the club…”
She paused and looked up at me with so much worry. My mind was already spinning, trying
to unpick and think carefully about everything she was saying, but I couldn’t see it. I had
only ever seen how much he cared about her in all the times I have seen them together.
“What about the night at the club?” I gritted through my teeth. I knew from the look in her
eyes I wasn’t going to like what she was about to say.
“I didn’t tell you because Cecilia swore me not to. She is dealing with Sal by herself, Gio. Just
like I thought I could deal with Henry alone. And she knew if I told you, it would cause a
huge amount of trouble and that is why I really need you to breathe and listen. Do not
react.”
“Liv…” I growled impatiently.
“I walked in on Sal pinning your mamma to a table by her throat when they were arguing.”
Rage coursed through my veins, like a flood of darkness as my chest rose and fell in angry
breaths. He laid a hand on my mother. He dared touch her with force. Suddenly, I felt fury
like no other that my papi would have felt if he was still here to protect her. If he was still
here, this wouldn’t be happening full stop.
“Gio…” I heard Liv’s worried voice behind me as I stormed out of our room towards
mamma’s wing. Throwing open her bedroom door, her frightened eyes widened from her
position on the edge of her bed. She was surrounded by suitcases and looked so small in
comparison to the mountain of possessions she had packed.
“Gio?” she whispered.
“Is it true? Has Sal dared to lay his hands on you?” I bellowed. Mamma’s big brown eyes
looked behind me at Liv, who I knew had just come sprinting into the room.
“You told him?” Mamma shouted in anger.
“I’m sorry Cecilia. I had to. You shouldn’t be with Sal.”
“This has nothing to do with either of you. Just leave me be,” she snapped.
“Is it true?” I shouted in rage, losing the last of my control over my temper.
She hid her face behind her hands and her lips trembled. When she pulled them away, she
looked me square in the eyes. “Yes. But it is not black and white Giovanni. I hurt him too. I
slapped him before Liv walked in and saw us.”
I growled out my frustration as I paced the room, my fists clenching and unclenching at my
sides. I would go fucking ballistic if I was in a room with him again. Family or not. No one
touches the women I love.
“Why? Why are you going with him mamma?” I yelled and all the colour drained out of her
face. “And do not stand here and feed me more bullshit. I have had enough of the fucking
lies in this family. Be honest.”
“He is in love with me. He always has been. He agreed to stop the alliance if I accepted him.”
I froze as I stared at her. “He blackmailed you to be with him? To leave your children and
move in with him? What else is he doing, mamma? Has he forced himself on you?” My voice
trembled with red-hot fury and she shook her head quickly.
“No. No. He wanted Raya and Sani to come with me but I didn’t want them to. They are
happier here. I will come and visit them. It will all be okay. Just let it go, Gio.”
“Let it go? Listen to yourself mamma! You are being forced to be with a man you hate! Why?
To protect me and Elle from a forced marriage?”
“Yes. That is exactly why Gio. I have had my big love story. I have experienced the wonder
of true love. I will not allow Sal or the Aianis to take that away from you or Elle. You do not
need to worry about me, darling boy. Sal will look after me. I know he is no gentleman but
he loves me and he will care for me even if I do not reciprocate his feelings. There is no way
out of this. Sal will kill anyone who stands in his way and I will not allow that to happen.”
She stepped forward and raised her hand to my cheek. “I am a big girl. I will be fine. You
will see. It is a small price to pay for my children’s happiness.”
“Mamma, I will not let you do this. I cannot let you leave with him.”
“You can. And you will. Because you must protect your family. You must do what is right for
everyone, not just one person. That is what it is to be a good Boss and you will be the best
Boss there has ever been in this family, because you will be nothing like him.”
I shook my head as a tear rolled down her cheek. “I am so sorry Gio. About everything. But I
promise you, I am making it up to you now. Let me do this for my children. This is my
choice and I am okay with it. Do NOT confront Sal over this. You know how it will end.”
“I will get you out of this, mamma. I promise.”
She smiled sadly at me. “I do not need saving, my love. I am fine.”
A knock on the door made us all spin around to see Mattio. “His men are here to escort you,
Signora Buccini. Shall I send them up for your belongings?”
“Si. Grazie, Mattio.”
She leaned up to kiss my cheek before she walked from the room with that cold mask
pulled over her face, never showing the flurry of emotions she was hiding.
I closed my eyes and ran both my hands through my hair. Two small arms were wrapped
around my waist and I felt Liv’s head resting against my back. “We have to help her, Gio. We
can’t let this happen.”
“Maybe she is right, Liv. Maybe she doesn’t need saving. She said he loves her and will care
for her.”
“Sugar and salt look the same, Gio. It doesn’t mean they are.” I turned to face her as I held
her against my chest. “Just because he says he loves her doesn’t mean his intentions are
good.”
“I know.” I replied, leaning down and kissing the top of her head. One thing was for certain.
I no longer trusted Salvatore Buccini. Whether he was my father or not, he had lost my
respect and my loyalty.
More Than You Know
Maximus
I flicked off the engine to my Harley outside the Buccini mansion and pulled off my bike
helmet. My smile widened when I saw my fiancé sitting on the stone steps waiting for me.
My fiancé. It felt so right just saying those words. Cami jumped up and raced towards me,
throwing her hands around my neck and kissing me while I balanced my chunky bike
between my thighs.
“Someone is happy to see me,” I smirked, and she pouted while she sorted out the mess of
my long brown hair my helmet had caused.
“I hate being away from you.”
“Not long now and you will be with me all the time,” I smiled.
As soon as the alliance was finalised with her brother which was a fucking epic turn of
events, I wanted Cami to move in with me in Trieste but with all the shit going on here and
Liv needing the extra help with Raya and Sani, Cami decided she wanted to stay and help
until it all settled down. Even though I wanted her all to myself, I admired and loved how
much Cami had thrown herself into this family and wanted to help them.
“Can’t you just move in here too?” she pleaded, giving me those big, blue doey eyes that
made this rough man melt into a puddle.
“You know I am here as much as I can be. I will stay tonight, yeah?”
She nodded and I pulled her back into me by her top and kissed her again.
“About fucking time fratello! Put her down and get your ass inside.” Giovanni called from
the entrance of the mansion. I broke the kiss and looked over at my grinning cousin, rolling
my eyes.
“Fuck off. You have your woman in your bed every night so give me five fucking minutes,” I
shouted back and he smirked.
“I’ll give you two.” He walked back inside and I glanced back at Cami. She took my helmet
from my hands as I climbed off my bike and threw my arms around her waist, pulling her
into me properly. I squeezed her ass in her little denim shorts and moaned.
“Two minutes is definitely not enough time for all things I want to do to you,” I growled as
her girly giggle caused my dick to stir.
“Then you will have to show some patience, Maximus. I will make it worth the wait
tonight,” she winked at me, wriggling out of my arms and grabbing my hand. She pulled me
along to the mansion as I let my heavy boots scuff the gravel and groaned in frustration
which made her laugh some more.
Once we made our way out to the back gardens of the mansion, I spotted Gio and Liv sitting
at the marble outdoor table while Raya and Sani were busy playing on the lawn. After
greeting Liv, I pulled out a chair and grabbed Cami’s hips before she could sit down herself,
so she was on my lap. Giovanni rolled his eyes with a smirk.
“Thanks for coming Max. You two are the only people we trust right now and we could
really do with a sounding board,” Liv said as she stood up and grabbed me a beer from the
ice bucket on the table. She hunted around for the beer opener, but I dismissed her, taking
the beer with a grazie and biting the cap off with my teeth.
“Yeah, things are pretty fucked up in this family right now,” I agreed. After Boss murdered
Aiani and claimed Cecilia as his before telling Gio that he was potentially his real father, I
think all our heads were a fucking mess. I knew my uncle was a determined man but I had
no idea just how far he would go to get what he wanted. As soon as the truth was out, I saw
through it all. I don’t think he ever intended to keep Aiani alive. I think he knew forcing
Giovanni into a loveless marriage was the quickest way to manipulate Cecilia. It wasn’t a
secret that the woman would do just about anything for her children and he knew it.
He had lost my trust and Gio’s. But the problem was… apart from murdering his ass, there
wasn’t a lot we could do. I have never liked the man but I have respected him as a Boss, but
I knew Gio had a complicated relationship with him. Now more than ever. Not only could he
be Gio’s father but he was also the Boss of Mala Del Brenta. As much as we were all pissed
at him right now, he still had extreme loyal followers in our family. All the other capos, the
soldiers and Toni were loyal to him. He was untouchable.
The commission were the only ones who could overthrow his position but that would mean
ratting him out to them about Aiani which was out of the question. We were not fucking
snakes.
“So, what are you thinking?” I asked Giovanni directly. He leaned back in the chair, rubbing
his stubbled jaw as he watched his siblings playing.
“Firstly, I want a paternity test without Sal’s knowledge. Secondly, I am going to go to meet
with the Leones.”
I sat up straight in shock, nearly knocking Cami off my lap. “You can’t be serious? It could be
a fucking trap Gio!”
“I know,” he said sternly as he reached for Liv’s hand. She was watching his face intensely
and I could see the worry in her eyes. They had already talked about this clearly but when
Gio makes up his mind about something, he is going to go through with it.
I huffed loudly, running my fingers through my free-flowing hair. I had wondered myself
why the Leone’s wanted to meet with Gio but the risk was too high. The fact they would
only meet with him alone and with no security was suicidal. He’d be walking into the palm
of their hands and praying for the best. They were our biggest rivals and had just formed an
alliance with Barbieri. It was a terrible idea to meet with them.
“I have a strong feeling that they have something on Sal. Obviously, I don’t fucking trust the
assholes and they could be trying to cause shit between our family but right now, I don’t
trust Boss either and I need to know what they want to tell me.”
“You really believe that is all they want? To talk?”
“I don’t have a fucking clue. But Liv can’t stay behind these mansion walls for the rest of her
life, which is the only way to keep her safe if I don’t meet them.”
I scoffed loudly. “So, this is about Liv?”
He narrowed his eyes at me. “No. This is about all of it.”
I leaned back, my mind swirling with all the possibilities that could come from this. Most
likely they will kill him or torture him. Or keep him hostage for something they want from
Sal. Or the least likely option, they really did have something to tell him and would let him
walk away unharmed after. He was going to do this no matter what I said so I had to find a
way of making sure he had some protection walking in there. My eyes lit up as the idea
came to me.
“The commission. I will go and meet with them and tell them where you are and what is
happening.”
He held my gaze and nodded slowly. “That way if they do harm me in any way, Boss will
have the evidence to warrant retaliation…”
“I don’t like this. Can’t you at least take some of your men with you?” Liv panicked. It was
clear Gio hadn’t gone into a huge amount of detail as to how dangerous this situation really
was.
“No. The message was clear. Meet them alone without informing Boss. If I don’t want to risk
him finding out I am meeting them, I have to go alone.”
“Then I want to come with you!” She grabbed his arm that was holding her hand and he
chuckled.
“No fucking way, bambola.”
“He is right, Liv. You will put him in more danger if you go as well. They could use you
against him at any point,” Cami replied softly, and Liv huffed back in her chair.
“Then I want to go with Max to the commission. I have to do something.”
I shrugged my shoulders at Gio. It wasn’t a bad idea. She would at least be safe with me and
the commission.
“Fine. But you do not leave Max’s side,” he sighed, and she gave me a cheeky grin. This little
firecracker was the most perfect woman for Giovanni. In fact, she was the only woman for
him. That much was obvious.
“When?”
“Tomorrow. I already sent a message to the Leones.”
“How?”
“Angelo. He is my most trusted soldier and proved his loyalty to me time and time again. He
delivered the message this morning and they accepted it. I am to meet them in neutral
territory in an underground club.”
“Well that sounds promising,” I scoffed.
“I need you to hang about here today. I have invited Boss over and I’d like you to be present
as I am sure he will be bringing Toni.”
Now this did surprise me and from the look on Liv’s face, she wasn’t too pleased about it.
“Okay. What are we discussing?”
“I am going to clear the air with him. Make him believe I am okay with him and mamma to
keep him off my back and not suspect my distrust.”
I nodded. It was a good idea. If we were to meet with the Leone’s discreetly, we had to
make it seem like Gio had accepted everything and the debris of the monstrous storm Sal
had caused had settled.
∞∞∞
The four of us sat in Gio’s office staring across from each other as the tension grew. My
hostile glare was directed at Toni. I have always hated this man. He was a brown nose who
couldn’t get his head any higher up my zio’s ass. And the way he looked at Cami made my
blood boil.
“I am guessing you have calmed down enough to want to discuss a few things now son,” Sal
stated boldly. I noticed Gio’s body tense as Sal called him son, but he kept his cool.
“Clearly there is a lot to discuss.”
Sal nodded. “I know it must have been a shock. I apologise.”
“Why do you believe I am your son?”
He chuckled gruffly and his eyes held a knowing look as if the answer was obvious. “Well
apart from the obvious physical resemblance, you share my ambition and ruthlessness
Giovanni. I knew what potential you had from the beginning. You were born to spill blood,
boy.”
I rolled my eyes and rested my ankle over my leg as Gio held his gaze. That didn’t mean
shit. Vinny was just as ruthless as Sal when he wanted to be. The difference was, he had
integrity. Gio was far more like Vinny in every way than Sal but I wasn’t about to point that
out.
“So, you have believed me to be your son since I was born? And you never said anything?
Why?”
Suddenly, Sal looked uncomfortable. It was a strange sight to see. The unshaken Boss
shuffled in his seat and pushed his hand through his full head of silvery hair.
“Your mamma. She chose Vinny. It took me a while to accept it, but I did eventually. I loved
her and wanted to see her happy. And she made Vinny happy. When my papi passed away
and the family title fell to me, I had something else to live for. So, I let it go. I watched from
afar but loved you all the same. I only ever wanted what was best for you Giovanni.”
I narrowed my eyes on Zio. He seemed genuine but it was hard to accept that as the truth
when I had never heard him speak so vulnerably in all my life. Gio seemed to be thinking
the same thing as he sat back in his chair and clasped his hands together, deep in thought.
“Why now then? How did you and mamma decide now was the right time? Don’t you feel
any guilt towards your brother?” I sensed the slight anger in Gio’s tone and saw his nostrils
flare. He needed to keep calm if we were going to pull this off.
“Vincenzo has been dead for two years. It is not like he is stepping on anyone’s toes,” Toni
cut in and I glared at him with hatred.
“We are well aware how long Vinny has been dead for,” I snapped.
“All I want to do is look after your mamma, son. I have never stopped loving her and after
Vin was murdered by those fucking scumbags, we have grown closer because I have made
sure she has been cared for. I am not trying to replace Vinny. I know I never will, but she
deserves to have a chance at happiness again.”
Again, his words seemed heartfelt, but I didn’t buy it. He just lied and we knew it. He said
Cecilia and him had grown closer after Vin’s death. Cecilia has outright told Gio that she
hates him.
Gio sighed deeply before he spoke. His face remained cool and expressionless but the
whites of his knuckles as he clenched his fists below the table told me otherwise. “Then we
are on the same page. As long as mamma is happy then so am I.”
Sal’s face broke into a genuine smile. “I am glad to hear it and she will be too. This is how it
always should have been Giovanni. You are my heir and the future of this family. I will be
thinking of retiring once Cecilia and I are married and this will all be yours. my boy.”
My combat boot stopped bouncing on my knee as I froze from his words. What?
Gio sat up straight and his jaw clenched. “Married?”
“Of course. Why wait? We will be married by the end of the week. Then Toni will get
everything together and I will sign the business over to you.”
“And mamma has agreed to this?”
“Of course,” Sal’s smile fell as he narrowed his eyes on Giovanni. Shit. Gio was about to blow
and Sal would know that he was not really onboard.
I jumped up from my chair and reached my hand out to my Zio with a beaming smile.
“Congratulations Boss. That is wonderful news.”
It was enough to distract him as he stood up, did up the button of his blue suit jacket and
shook my hand firmly. “Grazie Maximus. Of course, you will be benefiting from this as well.
Once Giovanni is Boss, you will be Underboss.”
I smiled and nodded with respect as I felt Gio standing up behind me. I stepped back and
gave him a knowing look. He had seemed to have regained his control and held his hand
out.
“Sorry, that was just a bit of a shock. Congratulations. I am happy for you both.”
Sal looked down at his hand before he pulled Gio into a hug, shocking every one of us in the
room. Boss does not hug. Ever. “Grazie figlio. Ciò significa più di quanto tu sappia. (Thank
you, son. That means more than you know.)”
Gio lifted his hand and held the back of Sal’s head firmly which looked like a moment of
genuine affection. He locked eyes with me over Sal's shoulder as he tugged a hair follicle
quickly, distracting Sal by saying, “I hope I am going to be the best man?”
Sal chuckled. “Of course you are.”
I peered over at Toni who couldn’t hide his jealousy quick enough, and I gave him a wink
before slapping him on the shoulder. If I ever became Boss in the future, this fucker would
be first to go and he knew it.
Sweet Love
Olivia
“Come on munchkins, time for bed!” I shouted for the zillionth time as Sani and Raya ran
circles around me in their pyjamas, their hair still damp from the bath and in no way
seeming the least bit ready to wind down. They had been playing up a little more than
usual since Cecilia left to live with Sal which was understandable. They were confused and
strangely excited. Cecilia came by earlier today and spent some time with them and told
them about the wedding. She made it seem like it was going to be a small party with cake
and music which I guess was true. Even though her voice was upbeat, and she had a smile
plastered on her face, her eyes were void of any emotion.
“I am counting to five and if your bottoms are not in your beds, there will be no story
tonight!” I used my teaching voice which caused them to halt in their screaming and to
stare out at each other, contemplating my words. It lasted a whole three seconds before
they squealed and started jumping on Sani’s bed.
“Right! Time to call in reinforcements… you made me do this!” I warned as I strolled
towards the door. They paused their jumping and watched with anticipation in their eyes
as I gave them a knowing look and opened the door.
Marco was stationed outside, ever the obedient protector and I nodded at him to enter. A
small smile played on his lips which he transformed into a stern expression as soon as he
entered the room.
“Ahhhh!! It’s monster Marco!” Sani screamed, pushing Raya out the way as he leapt off his
bed to run.
“Monster Marco is feeling hungry! And naughty children who aren’t in their beds are my
favourite snack!” He boomed as I folded my arms across my chest and watched with a smile
as he stomped like a giant towards the frantically running bodies around the room.
“Quick! Get in your bed Sani so he can’t get us!” Raya shouted excitedly as she raced
through the adjoining door to her room.
Sani did some weird action man roll across the floor and through Marco’s legs before
hitting his bum and laughing as he sprinted to his bed and climbed under the covers.
“Owww! No! They escaped again! Looks like I will have to try again tomorrow night,” Marco
spoke loudly as he straightened up and walked back towards me. We gave each other a sly
fist bump before he left the room and I walked over to Sani’s bed to tuck him in.
“Good night you crazy kid,” I smiled as I kissed his forehead.
“Liv… is zio Sal not going to be my zio anymore? When he marries mamma will he be my
new papi?”
Anger rose in me as I thought about how messed up this all was and how confused these
two little people must be feeling. “No Sani. No one can replace you Papi. From what I have
heard, your Papi was a very special man and he loved you very much.”
“I don’t really remember him that much,” he said sadly and I swallowed the lump in my
throat.
“That’s okay because he is always with you. Even if you can’t see him, he is right here.” I
poked his chest, indicating his heart. “The people we love never really leave us.”
“Do you have a papi Liv?”
I smiled sadly at him as I stroked his black curls away from his face. “I do. Just like you, he’s
right here.” I rested my hand over my heart and he nodded in understanding.
“Good night sweet boy,” I tucked him in as he grabbed his teddy and turned on his side.
After I tucked Raya in and closed her door, I had to take a moment to compose myself.
These little people who meant so much to me were the ones who were going to suffer
through this family’s mess. They needed their mamma. We had to stop this wedding from
happening but how?
Making my way towards the stairs to the top floor, I paused when I heard giggling and
laughing from behind Cami’s door. I smiled knowing at least one good thing had come out
of all this mess. When I entered our bedroom, I found Giovanni dozing on the bed, shirtless
in a pair of grey joggers with the TV on in the background. I tiptoed towards him, so I didn’t
wake him up. As I reached his side, his eyes flew open and as quick as lightning, he grabbed
my hips and flung me onto the bed, caging me beneath his enormous frame as I squealed.
“I thought you were asleep!” I chuckled as he ran his nose up my throat.
“I was but my body knows when you are near,” he mumbled as I ran my fingers through his
hair. “Did they go down okay?”
I scoffed. “In the end. Sani asked if Sal was going to be his new papi.”
Gio groaned and rolled off me, holding his hand over his eyes.
“Are you going to let Cecilia go through with this?” I asked, pulling myself up on my elbow.
“I don’t know how I can stop it, Liv. I have tried my best to persuade her not to go through
with this, but she is adamant it has to happen. She has stopped answering my calls now
because she knows what I am going to say. I know you feel his feelings towards her are
toxic Liv but with no proof that he is or has done anything wrong, my hands are fucking
tied.”
I sighed because I knew he was right. “Can you explain the commission to me? I feel like I
should know a little more than I do before I walk in there tomorrow.”
“They are made up of previous and existing members of all the mafia families in Italy. Over
fifty years ago, all the Boss’ of every family signed a treaty to try to bring some peace
amongst us all as there was so much hate and bloodshed. It was bad for business and hard
to keep us out of the press and justice system when people were constantly having shoot
ups in public places. Because of this treaty, we are unable to kill anyone from another mafia
family unjustly. The commission works as a jury. If we believe a member has broken the
treaty, we take our evidence to the commission, and they decide if it is enough for
retaliation.”
I rolled onto my side as I ran my fingertips across his hard chest. “So by going to them
tomorrow and telling them where you are and why, the Leone’s will not be able to harm
you?”
He looked down into my eyes and gave me a small smile. “That’s the idea.”
“But they still could?” I hated this. I hated the idea of him meeting them alone and just
hoping for the best.
“Yes. But if they did, they would be breaking the treaty and then we would be given the
green light to attack them.”
“But then it would be too late! They would have already killed you!” Bile rose to my throat
and my gut twisted at the thought of the amount of danger he was about to put himself in.
“I am taking Angelo with me if that helps,” he ran his knuckles over my cheek, and I
frowned. No, that did not help ease my worry at all. “And they also will not have any of their
men. The arrangement is to meet alone from both sides.”
“But it could be a trap?”
“Yes.”
I huffed loudly and he chuckled. How was he feeling so calm about this? How was he not
freaking out like I was?
“Bambola, I know it’s hard but try not to worry about me, okay? I will have my alarm watch
on so if anything goes wrong, I will send an alert to Max immediately and he will be able to
inform the commission. That’s when Max will need to tell Sal.”
I rubbed my hands down my face as I fought back the intense emotions I was feeling. I
wanted to scream or cry or just shout at how unfair this was, but I knew that was immature
and wouldn’t help in any way. I had signed up for this. This danger came with being with
him. I had to grit my teeth and stay strong.
“Okay,” I whispered. He pulled me back to lie down in the safety of his arms and I stared up
at his gorgeous face. I had fallen so madly in love with this man, but I was starting to realise
that every day in his world, I risked losing him. It was a hard pill to swallow but it reminded
me that life is precious, and it could be taken away at any moment.
“I love you Gio. Please don’t die,” I was being deadly serious, but he laughed loudly before
kissing the tip of my nose.
“I won’t. I have far too much to live for Bambola.”
The air sizzled with emotional and sexual tension as I held his gaze as we stared at each
other with intensity. Just a few months ago, I had no idea this man existed and now he was
my whole world. I could see the depth of his own emotions in those mountain brown eyes,
and I slowly inched my face closer to his so I could brush my lips against his. My hands
threaded through his hair as our noses caressed and his lips parted slightly encouraging me
to continue. I licked his lips sensually before he gripped my body tightly and deepened the
kiss with passion. Within seconds, our clothes were discarded on the floor, and he rolled on
top of me, entering me in one slow, delicious stroke. We clung to each other’s bodies as he
gazed down at me, his black hair hanging over his forehead. He covered my body so
perfectly with his as we moulded together, him filling me completely and pausing. His dark
eyes burned with love and desire before he leant down and kissed me so tenderly it made
my insides melt and burn at the same time. I needed him to move, I felt so full, yet he wasn’t
moving and my need to feel him taking me, claiming me like he does, was too much. My
back arched off the bed as I racked my nails along his back, my body pleading with his to
end this pleasurable torture.
Just as I was about to cry out and beg for him to move, he did. Pulling out of me so slowly
only to push back in hard causing me to gasp into his mouth. My eyes shot open as he
repeated it again and again. Out slowly, powerful thrust in. I felt like I was going to explode.
Every slow, deliberate massage inside me was met by a groan from him as he plunged back
inside and a whimper from me as he glided back out so slowly. It was an unbearable
pleasure like I had never felt before. The intense feelings building inside me were enough
to make me want to cry. His fingers tightened around my back as he tried to hold onto his
control to keep this torturously slow pace. Each thrust back in was harder and deeper than
the last as he growled in appreciation and I dug my nails into his back, needing more.
“You. Are. Mine,” he breathed with affection with every thrust and for the first time ever,
those words didn’t scare me. They were true. I was completely and utterly his, mind, body
and soul. And he was mine.
“I’m yours,” I moaned back and I felt all his back muscles ripple under the palms of my
hands as those words caused him to lose control. He claimed my lips with so much passion
and need as he started to really move inside me, hitting that perfect spot over and over
until I was crying out his name against his lips and he gasped out his own orgasm inside
me.
With our foreheads stuck together with sweat and both of us breathless, we held each other
tightly as we tried to regain our senses. That was the most intimate and loving sex we have
ever had. A tear rolled down my cheek as I felt overcome with how much I loved this man.
He rolled onto his side, still holding me to him and stroked my hair without saying a word.
We stayed entangled like ivy as my eyelids started to feel heavy. The last thing I heard as I
drifted off to sleep was his sweet words in my ear.
“I would walk through fire for you. Ti amo bambola.”
Without a doubt, so would I.
Bound To Revenge
Giovanni
I stared down at my nonna's stunning engagement ring in the black velvet box. Mamma
had left it on my desk before she left to go to Sal's with no message or explanation. I didn't
need one. I always knew why my nonna had given this ring to me much to my mamma's
annoyance and confusion. When I visited her on her last days on this Earth, she had placed
it in my hands and said this belongs to the next consorte della mafia (mafia wife) and I
would know when I found the one. At the time, I had no interest in finding 'the one' and I
did not want to marry for love, so I gave it to mamma, knowing how much she loved it. I
snapped it shut and placed it in the safe in my office. If I survived today, that ring would be
on Olivia's finger.
Strolling down the steps towards the entrance of the mansion, I smiled when I saw Liv, Max
and Camilla all chatting by the front door.
“You all set?” Max gave me a stern look as I pulled Liv into my arms and tried to hold onto
the memory of how her body felt against mine one more time. I knew what I was
potentially getting myself into. I was armed with a knife and gun with Angelo as extra
muscle but if it was a trick and they were not alone, I would be fighting my way out of there
with a slim chance of making it out alive.
“Of course,” I replied, keeping my voice calm and steady. I wasn’t afraid of dying. Far from
it. I had grown up knowing death was natural and an everyday risk in my world. It was
what I would be leaving behind that scared me more. My family. Liv. I was their protector
and without me, who knows what would become of them.
“Do you have the address and details of the meeting point to inform the commission? And
the photos?” I asked and Max nodded, tapping his rucksack that was hanging over his arm.
I squeezed Liv tighter into my body before pulling her head back from my chest and kissing
her lips swiftly.
“I’ll see you tonight, bambola. Don’t get into any trouble while I’m gone,” I warned with a
grin. I was trying to keep the mood light but the intense worry in her eyes was evident.
“Please come back,” she whispered, and I kissed the tip of her cute little nose.
“Always,” I said seriously, holding her gaze as her eyes watered. I needed to leave before
those eyes made me change my mind about what I was about to do. Pulling her arms away
from my body gently, I walked away leaving her standing with Camilla as I strolled out the
mansion with Max and Angelo. The Lamborghini was already parked out front, ready for us.
I was going to take my fastest and most garish car to make a point. People would see it.
People would recognise it.
Max grabbed my shoulder and gave it a firm squeeze as I nodded to him in understanding.
We didn’t need words. Just as I was about to climb into the passenger's side, I paused.
“Max?” He turned slowly and held my gaze. “If I don’t make it back…”
“I know. I will protect this family with my life. Olivia included. You have my word.”
I nodded once and climbed in before Angelo ignited the engine, roaring it to life.
∞∞∞
As we pulled up outside the desolate nightclub, I scanned the outside of the rundown
building and assessed my surroundings. It was broad daylight so there was hardly anyone
about this side of town that was normally hustling and bustling as soon as the sun set.
Graffiti along the walls outside and the metal shutters signalling the club was closed gave
off a hostile vibe.
Angelo and I both sat in silence, our eyes, ears and bodies on high alert, searching for any
possible danger. Nothing. We waited a few more minutes before a side door opened down
the alleyway to the right of the building and a large, muscular man stepped out the heavy
door, nodding our way.
“You know the plan? We go into together but if it’s a trap you get yourself out and back to
Max immediately. I have the alarm watch on so he will know you are on your way. That is
an order, Angelo. No trying to be the hero, got it?” I narrowed my eyes at my most loyal
soldier and he nodded professionally. We climbed out the car and made our way towards
the Leone Soldier who put his hand out to pause us as soon as we came near.
“Niente armi. (No weapons,)” he spoke firmly.
I gave him my most menacing glare. “Non sono uno sciocco. Non entrerò senza la mia
pistola. (I am not a fool. I will not be entering without my gun.)”
The man and I stood in a standoff as I waited for him to realise I was not going to back
down. Slowly he moved away from the entrance allowing us to pass through into the
gloomy corridor. It stank of sweat and stale alcohol as Angelo and I were guided down
some stairs to an underground level. When we reached the end door, the soldier knocked
once before opening it wide and gesturing for us to enter.
“Giovanni Buccini, the one and only. How wonderful it is to finally meet you,” a deep,
swarve voice came from the darkness of the room. There was only one light swinging from
the ceiling, causing a dim spotlight over a metal table in the centre of the room. I narrowed
my eyes, keeping my senses on high alert as I tried to make out how many men were in the
room. Two.
“What is with the dramatics? Do we not live in the 21st century,” I stated as I lifted my hand
and flicked on the light switch next to me, flooding the room with artificial light.
There on the other side of the table were the two men I had despised all my life. The Boss,
Riccardo Leone and his son, underboss, Lorenzo. They were both leaning back lazily in
their designer suits staring back at me. Riccardo had a wicked smirk plastered on his face
but Lorenzo was showing me just as much hate and hostility that I am sure I had written all
over my features.
“Apologies, my son likes to create a mood,” Riccardo laughed lazily as Lorenzo’s eyes
narrowed on me.
“I am more of a get the fuck on with it type,” I replied, walking up to the table and pulling
out a chair opposite them.
“I can respect that,” Riccardo replied, opening his suit jacket and delving his hand inside. I
tensed, hand moving to my gun as I kept my eyes fixed on his movements. When he pulled
out two cigars, I relaxed ever so slightly. I still wouldn’t trust that this wasn’t an ambush
until I was back out that door, driving away unharmed. “Would you care for one?”
I nodded, leaning forward and taking the freshly cut cigar from him. A soldier walked over
to me and held out his Zippo lighting the end as I puffed at it.
“As lovely as this is. I don’t think you asked me here to share a cigar and a whiskey Leone.”
“I am pleased to see you are a man of your word. Only one soldier in presence and I can
assume your Boss is in the dark about this little meeting?” He raised one eyebrow as he
puffed on his own brown stick.
“Currently yes. Although the commission is aware of my whereabouts in case you were
thinking of not keeping your word.”
His eyes danced with amusement as he nodded. “You are a sensible man, Giovanni. Just like
your father.”
My jaw tensed and for a moment I wondered if he could possibly know.
“I always liked Vincenzo. He would have made a fine Boss and he was a fair man. Did he
ever tell you that we had a drink once?”
Anger spiked to the surface of my skin as I listened to the man who murdered him speak as
if they were fucking friends. When I didn’t respond but continued to glare at him, trying to
hold onto my control not to put a bullet in this fucker’s head right here and now, he spoke
again.
“We happened to be in the same club one night in Venice. Obviously, that should have
ended in bloodshed but your father sent a bottle of whiskey my way and asked for a night
of peace so he could enjoy his evening with your mother. I was blown away by the gesture
from such a notorious rival and he gained my respect that night.”
“So much respect that you put out a hit on him and tried to kidnap my mother,” I hissed, my
voice so deep and laced with aggression I noticed Lorenzo slightly shuffling in his seat.
Riccardo’s eyes became serious as he held my gaze, never backing down from my
aggressive stance. “That is what you have been made to believe. That is why you are here.
So, we can set the record straight.”
I scoffed loudly and stubbed out the cigar in the ashtray on the table. “So, you are here to
plead your innocence? Let me guess, you have heard rumours that my uncle is seeking
revenge and you are shitting your Armani pants?”
“I would love for Salvatore to attempt anything towards my family. I am sure you are aware
our family has grown recently,” Lorenzo interrupted with a sly smirk. I smacked my lips
together as I moved my burning gaze to him.
“I hear congratulations are in order. Although, please send your wife my deepest
sympathy,” I snapped back causing his smile to fall.
“That is not why you are here Giovanni. Yes we are aware that Salvatore is taking measures
to target us hence our alliance with Barbieri. I am sure you can understand we are only
protecting our backs in case it ever comes to a war. Just like your alliance with the Aianis.
But I am hoping it will not come to that,” Riccardo leaned forward, his scarred face shining
under the artificial lights.
I ran my tongue along my teeth as I folded my arms over my chest and glared at these men.
“Go on then, let’s hear you pin my father’s death on someone else… Who is it to be?
Francesco? A lower rank family member? A drug lord?”
A heavy silence fell between us as the room thickened with sudden tension and I grew
more and more impatient by the second.
“Firstly, we are not pinning your father's murder on anyone. We are here to tell you the
truth and the facts. What you choose to do with it is up to you,” Riccardo spoke seriously as
Lorenzo pulled out a large file and iPad from his briefcase. He placed it on the table and slid
it towards me. I narrowed my eyes as I stared at it and back at them.
“What’s this?”
“This is all the information we have gathered from our investigations over the last two
years on the death of your father. This is all the evidence that points towards the people
who are responsible for that night.”
I didn’t move as I tried to understand what this meant. If they were telling the truth, they
knew they were being framed for Vinny’s death and had been doing their own
investigations to clear their name. But why were they giving it to me? Their rival?
“If this is everything you say it is…, why have you not taken it to the commission? Why give
it to me?” I questioned suspiciously.
Lorenzo spoke first. “Because… if someone killed my father, I would want to know first so I
could be the one to bring justice, not the commission.”
My heart started thundering in my chest as I saw no malice or distrust behind his eyes. He
was telling the truth. Whatever was in this file was the truth. I was feeling more and more
certain. Leaning forward, I moved the iPad off the top of the file and opened the binder. No
one spoke but I could feel their gaze on me as I skim read the first page of a CCTV report. It
was in Leone’s garage and the date on the still video shots were the day before my papi’s
shooting. The white vans with the Leone number plates were lined up in their garage. The
same vans that stopped my father’s security and killed them. I flipped to the next page and
saw footage of two men with black balaclava’s breaking into the garage.
“Two of our vans were stolen from our out of city garage a day before the shooting. We
believe those vans were used in the attack on your father,” Riccardo stated the obvious.
This proved nothing. The Leone’s could have easily set this up themselves to make it look
like a robbery. I flicked the next page where there was evidence that the vans were
reported stolen the next day by Riccardo himself. They were found, burnt and abandoned a
week later by police.
“This does not prove your innocence. My mother heard one of your men say your name out
of their lips that night. That you wanted her alive.”
“Keep reading,” Riccardo stated calmly. I flicked through more pages of CCTV footage of the
city and froze when I saw the vans pulling out of an abandoned car park the night of the
ambush. The licence plates had been changed but they were the exact same model of the
stolen vehicles. Except they weren’t leaving Leone's territory. They were leaving the Aianis.
My head snapped up and widened as I glanced across at Riccardo. He nodded.
“Play the first video on the iPad.”
My hands were starting to tremble with rage as I picked it up and pressed play. The CCTV
footage had zoomed in on the driver of one of the vehicles. A brown-haired man with green
eyes. I didn’t recognise him as anyone I had ever met.
“We did a background check on that man. His name was Quintin Vallis. He was one of
Francesco’s head soldiers. He was leading the ambush and the man who attempted to
kidnap your mamma. I believe Salvatore shot him during the attack, although his death is
said to have been a drug deal gone wrong in our findings.”
The Aianis. They were behind this all along? They killed my papi? But why? Sal was trying
to do a deal with them at the time of the shooting. I remember vividly that was what I was
arguing with my father about. He didn’t want to form an alliance with them but Sal and I
thought it was best to gain more power. Is that why they killed him? Just because he was
against it?
Fury blazed through my veins like red-hot lava as I realised that Francesco was already
dead. I would never get to torture him or kill him at my own hands for what he did. But I
couldn’t tell the Leone’s that or I would be corrupting my uncle.
“So, Francesco did this because my father was standing in the way of an alliance?” I gritted
through my teeth.
“That is what we thought but we wanted to be sure. We sent an undercover spy into their
family posing as a soldier,” Lorenzo stated, and my eyes widened. Cami said that one of her
father's soldiers had suddenly gone missing. He must have been their spy and come back to
the Leones now. That was fucking risky but brilliant.
“And?”
The two men looked at each other carefully before Riccardo sat up straight and clasped his
hands on the table, staring deeply into my eyes. “Our man climbed up the ranks quickly. He
became one of Francesco’s most trusted men. He managed to gain important entail and
record conversations in meetings as well as phone calls. This is not going to be easy to
listen to Giovanni but you deserve the truth.”
My blood ran cold as I realised this was it. This was the moment everything would change. I
would find out exactly who killed my papi and why.
I swiped to the next video on the iPad that was an audio recording and pressed play as my
heartbeat pounded in my ears.
“We had a fucking deal. We got rid of Vincenzo for him, and you would make sure Camilla
married Giovanni. Why the fuck has it been a week since Camilla met him and we have
heard nothing?” The familiar, sleazy voice of Francesco echoed through the device. I froze
on hearing my name. But what came next had all the colour drain from my face.
“We still have a deal. But the family needs time. Salvatore needs to ensure it is the right
time to approach Giovanni with this.” Toni’s voice came through firmly and clearly. I would
recognise it anywhere. The voice of a fucking traitor.
“You tell Salvatore that I did not risk everything to sit and fucking wait for my daughter to
become a Boss’ wife. I want your end of this fucking deal to be finalised as soon as possible
or…”
“Or what Francesco? Do not threaten Salvatore Buccini. We can quite easily throw you to
wolves if you do not play nicely.”
“This was his idea! He came to me with this arrangement! To kill his brother and frame the
Leones! I can just as easily go to the commission myself!” Francesco raised his voice down
the phone.
“And who do you think they will believe? A grieving brother or a rival Boss?” Toni chuckled.
There was a long silence and I stared blankly at the iPad.
“Fine. Tell Salvatore he has two weeks. I have already waited two years to make this
marriage happen and I am losing my patience. You back out of this and you will have
enemies surrounding you in every territory.”
The phone call ended and I sat motionless. All I could focus on was my breathing. The heavy
breaths in and out, my chest rising and falling, nostrils flaring as I tried to take in as much
oxygen as my body needed to not pass out. I couldn’t… believe it. Yet, I had just heard it
with my own ears.
Salvatore with the help of Toni plotted his own little brother’s death. Why? Why?
“As I said before, you can choose to do what you want with this information. If you want us
to take it to the commission for them to deal with the injustice themselves than we will but
we thought you- “
“No.”
Riccardo paused at my interruption. I glanced up at them for the first time since the audio
played and by the looks on their startled faces, I knew I looked like a monster.
“I will deal with this myself.”
I stood up abruptly, taking the file and iPad with me. I nodded at Angelo, whose own face
looked pale and sickly from shock, to follow me out.
“Giovanni!” Riccardo called from his chair. I turned slightly not really seeing him through
the rage that had now manifested through every fibre of my body. “You owe us for this. But
don’t think we are allies now. Only a monster can take out another monster. You will do
well to remember that.” He said in warning, reminding me that even though they were not
responsible for any of this, we were still rivals. I halted in my steps towards the door and
spun on my feet to glare back at them both.
“Olivia. The shooting. Was it you?” I growled, but I already knew the answer.
“No. She’s far too pretty to kill.”
My jaw ticked and I grabbed the door, slamming it open violently as it hid the wall, the
noise echoing around the room. I could barely see or hear through my shock and anger as I
stumbled out of the building into the daylight again. I squinted my eyes against the blinding
sun as I heard the beep of the Lamborghini unlock. Climbing in, I gripped my hair in my
hands as Angelo started up the engine silently and sped us out of the city back towards
Verona. As we reached the open roads that snaked around the rocky landscape of the coast,
I couldn’t take it anymore. I couldn’t bear to be in this small space. I needed air. I needed to
breathe.
“Ferma l'auto. Adesso! (Stop the car! Now!)” I ordered.
Angelo swerved to the edge of the cliff and turned off the engine as I climbed frantically out
of the car. I hunched over, hands on my knees as my head spun and the bile rose in my
throat. Taking deep breaths in through my nose and out of my mouth for a few minutes, I
started to regain control over my body and slumped to the dirty cliff edge.
I had no idea how long I sat there for, staring out over the horizon but I felt every emotion
possible in that time. Disbelief, shock, denial, confusion, betrayal, despair, disgusted and
enraged. That last one was the one that stuck. How could he do this? How could he murder
his own brother?
So, he was in love with mamma… he believed me to be his son… was it all out of jealousy?
That Vinny had everything he wanted. There had to be more to it than that? I was willing
there to be more to it? Something unforgivable that papi had done but no matter how hard
I racked my brains I knew there was nothing. Nothing except… me. Vinny was next in line
to be Boss because Sal had no children. But he believed he did. He believed it was me that
should take over. That I was his rightful heir. And he wanted mamma for himself. The only
person in the way of getting everything he wanted was my papi. The cold, hard truth was
right there staring me in the face. And now I knew he was capable of killing his own blood, I
knew in my heart it was either him or Toni that must have put the hit on Olivia. They just
weren’t expecting me to jump in front of the fucking gun.
An hour or so must have passed as I sat with my volatile thoughts before I heard Angelo’s
boots on the road behind me.
“You will speak a word of this to no one Angelo,” I spoke firmly, and I knew he was nodding
behind me.
“What are you going to do?”
I gazed out at the horizon as the sun started to set. This was the moment that would change
everything. My entire life was about to implode but I knew what I had to do.
“I am going to kill Salvatore Buccini on what he thinks is the best day of his life. I am going
to rip the floor right out from underneath him,” I gritted through my teeth as my brain
swirled with a vengeful plan.
“From this moment, I pledge my loyalty and allegiance to you as Boss,” Angelo bowed his
head as I stood up and took his hand. He knew what this meant.
I kill Sal. I become Boss. And I was ready to rip the fucking crown right of his head.
The Commission
Olivia
“Try not to piss anyone off today, Liv. Best you leave all the talking to me,” Max winked as
he climbed out of the SUV. I opened my door before he could get to it to help me out and
stepped onto the quiet driveway of what looked like a large vineyard.
“I might be feisty, but I am not stupid Max. I know when to bite my tongue.” He gave me a
knowing look with a cheeky smile which I returned. “Where are we? Is this a vineyard?”
“Yes. The commission are geniuses setting up their workplace where they have an endless
flow of wine.”
We walked up to the entrance with two Buccini soldiers following closely behind. Once we
were inside the beautiful, old stone building, Max walked over to the welcome desk and
spoke in a hushed voice to the man in a fine suit. He nodded before disappearing behind a
door and Max turned to me, leaning his elbow on the desk.
“Now what?” I whispered.
“Now we wait to be seen. Want a glass of wine?”
I looked over my shoulder to where Max was nodding to and saw an elegant bar full of
unsuspecting visitors here for a day of wine tasting and grape picking. Max walked up to
me and held out his tattooed arm. “We could both use a drink right now.”
I placed my hand in his elbow as we walked up to the bar and both perched on wooden bar
stools. After the barmaid had poured us each a smooth, full bodied red wine and I took a sip
allowing the warmth to travel through me, I sighed.
“Have you heard anything yet? From Gio?” My mind will not allow me to relax. No matter
how much wine I drank in this place, I knew I would still be on edge. Just knowing he was
in such a dangerous situation right now was making me sweat and my gut twist.
“Liv, he only left an hour ago. He has an alarm watch on him which will alert me directly if
he is in any real danger. Try not worry,” he lifted his wrist with the sleek black watch
adorning it.
“How can I not worry? The Leone’s are your biggest enemies! Do you really believe they are
going to let him go without harming him when they have such a perfect opportunity?”
Max held my gaze as he took a sip of his wine and put it down on the bar slowly. “Yes. I
think they know something. Something big. Something that is going to fuck our lives up
completely.”
I frowned in confusion. “Like what?”
Max sighed, rubbing his jaw. “I don’t know but I am starting to think it could have
something to do with Sal. Since all this shit has come out about him and Cecilia, my
suspicions have been growing.”
I leaned forward urgently, still just as confused. “Max spit it out please. Remember I am
new to all of this and I need all the information.”
His green eyes locked with mine and I could see his mind spinning. He wasn’t sure whether
he should tell me without Gio’s approval but I needed the distraction more than anything. “I
think Sal might have killed Vinny or at least played a part in the attack.”
My eyes widened in shock and my mouth hung open. “What? But Vinny was his brother?
Why would he- “and then it hit me. Cecilia. Gio. Sal believed they belonged to him. He had
been obsessed with Cecilia for years and watched her choose his own brother over him and
raise a child that could be his. “But why then? Why 27 years later?”
Max huffed and grabbed his wine, downing it in one. “I’ve been wondering the same thing.
Around the time of Vinny’s death, we were all growing concerned about the Leones. They
were growing rapidly in numbers and some of our biggest clients were starting to work
with them as they were offering their services at competitive rates. It was pissing Sal off. He
wanted to knock them back but without the commission’s approval there was nothing he
could do.”
“So, you think he framed them for Vinny’s murder? In the hope that the commission would
let him retaliate?” I was starting to catch on to Max’s trail of thought quickly and he nodded.
“But it didn’t work. There wasn’t enough evidence. I always wondered why we could never
get enough from the scene. I mean we should have at least been able to identify a body of
the soldiers who killed Vinny but Sal always said when they went back to the scene after
making sure Cecilia was safe, the bodies were gone. What if that was a lie? What if Sal was
the one who got rid of them himself?”
“But surely, he would have been alone in this? Buccini members would never agree to a hit
on their underboss?” I asked, my heart now speeding in my chest.
“I don’t think he used our men.”
I shook my head in disbelief. It was hard to imagine that Sal would go to such lengths to get
what he wanted. To have his brother murdered so he could kill the Leones and get to
Cecilia and Gio. Could it be true? In my heart, I knew it could be. Sal reminded me a lot of
Henry except he was a lot smarter. When he wanted something or believed something was
his, he would do anything to have it. I saw that with my own eyes when he shot Francesco.
“Does Gio know? Are we going to tell the commission?”
Max shook his head. “No. I have only really just come to this conclusion today as I have
been trying to understand why the Leones would want to meet Gio. And no. We cannot say
a word to the commission, not without evidence. That is very important Liv.” He gave me a
stern look and I nodded. I suddenly felt very out of my depth here. What was I doing? I was
about to meet members representing every mafia family in Italy in one room and who the
fuck was I?
“Mi scusi. Sono pronti per te,” a polite and formal voice said behind me. Max nodded and
jumped off his stool, holding his arm out to me again.
“Ready?”
“No,” I whispered in a shaky voice, and he smiled widely.
“Come on. Let’s go and say hello to my papi.”
“What?” I whisper- yelled in his ear as I took his arm and we followed the escort down a
narrow stone corridor to the back of the building.
“My papi is the Buccini representative. He was a soldier who worked his way up the ranks
for years, then ended up marrying my mamma who is Sal’s sister and then was elected a
member of the commission.”
“Wow. That’s… impressive.”
Max chuckled deeply and I could see the pride in his smile. “Yes. He is my inspiration.”
After climbing an ancient staircase where the walls were decorated with enormous
antique, renaissance paintings, we approached double doors with gold framed detail and I
squeezed Max’s arm with nerves. He gave me a reassuring smile just as the doors were
opened by two beefy men in black and we walked into an exquisite room full of paintings,
statues and art. There in the middle of the room was a long, mahogany table with around
twenty or so men all wearing expensive, designer suits.
Max walked us to the head of the table and bowed his head at them all in respect. I quickly
copied him and as I looked up, I saw that all of their curious and very intimidating eyes
were on me and not Max.
“Who is this? It is not every day we have a beautiful woman visit us?” One middle-aged man
asked. I was relieved that they were talking in English. Before Max could answer I let go of
his arm and stood up a little taller.
“My name is Olivia Jones and I am Giovanni Buccini’s girlfriend. I am here in his place.”
Silence fell around the room. Some of the men seemed surprised or shocked by my
confident introduction while others narrowed their eyes and looked me up and down with
suspicion.
“And why has Giovanni sent his woman and Capo instead of seeing us himself?” Another
asked. As my eyes darted around the room, I tried to work out who was Max’s dad and
representing the Buccini family. No one stood out.
“He is currently meeting with Riccardo and Lorenzo Leone alone,” Max said calmly.
“What?” One man stood up abruptly and Max smiled. “Alone? That is suicidal!” This man
had the same green eyes as Max and I guessed it was his father from the evident concern he
had for Gio.
“No it is not. Our family signed the treaty just like yours. Riccardo would be a fool to kill
Giovanni.” Another man shouted. Clearly a member of the Leones.
“That is why we are here. To inform you of what is happening so if for whatever reason
Giovanni does not make it out of this meeting, you all know who is responsible.” Max
opened his bag and threw the pictures of me and Gio onto the table as well as an image of
some Italian writing on a napkin and a map with the location they are currently meeting at.
“Two weeks ago, the Leones cornered Olivia and threatened her life unless she delivered
Giovanni a message to meet with them alone without informing Salvatore. Riccardo had
been sighted in Verona multiple times, sending discreet messages to Giovanni like this one
here.” Max lifted the photo of the napkin as all the men studied it.
“Why?” Another man asked.
“We don’t know. That is why Giovanni has decided to meet them. To hear what they have to
say.”
“We want to be kept informed of this development, Maximus. Whatever the outcome of this
meeting.” Max’s father said firmly, and he nodded. “You call me the moment you hear from
Giovanni.”
After a few more questions from the commission about the meeting, we were sent on our
way. As soon as we climbed back into the SUV with the two soldiers who had been waiting
for us in the bar, I checked my phone for anything from Gio. My heart plummeted when I
saw I had nothing. Glancing over at Max, I saw he was doing the same. When he felt my gaze
on him, he turned his head and gave me a reassuring smile.
“I am sure he is fine. No news is good news, right?”
I nodded slowly as I watched the beautiful landscape zoom past my window, repeating
those words over and over in my head.
A Close Encounter
Camilla
“Cami! I’m hungry,” Sani moaned from the floor where he was playing with his train set. I
glanced down at my watch and saw it was gone one pm and it was probably time for their
lunch. I had never really been the maternal type. I didn’t have a lot of experience around
children so Sani and Raya being left in my care today was daunting to say the least. But I
was going with the approach of giving them what they want to make them happy and keep
the peace.
“Ok. What would you like? I will go and make you something.”
He paused his play, eyes rolling up to the ceiling and finger tapping his chin. “Finger
sandwiches like Liv makes them. And chocolate. And apple juice. And some melon.”
I repeated the list back to him and he nodded. Ok. I could do that. I had never made finger
sandwiches before, but I am sure it is not rocket science. Standing up from their playroom
carpet, I brushed down my light blue sundress.
“What about you Raya?”
“The same please,” she smiled sweetly. She was such an angel. I grinned back before
making my way to the door. After asking Marco to go inside and play with them while I
made their lunch, I found myself hunting around in the spacious, modern kitchen that I
swear was barely used by any of the family members. It took me forever before I even
found any plates, but I was determined to be of some use today. Max and Liv had left to visit
the commission hours ago and Gio was meeting the Leones. I felt slightly useless in this
whole mess but if I could at least do a good job of taking care of these kids, then I was at
least doing something.
Bending down to rummage in a cupboard for some chocolate, I didn’t notice anyone enter
the room but as soon as that intimidating, sly voice startled me, I jumped up from my
position and gasped.
“Quello è un bel culo con cui mi stai prendendo in giro (That is one fine ass you are teasing
me with.)”
My blue eyes widened, and my skin itched with disgust as I saw Toni leaning against the
kitchen door. His hazel eyes roamed my body as he slowly licked his lips before biting his
lower lip aggressively and letting out an appreciative growl. He was wearing more casual
clothes than I had seen him in before, ditching the tailored suit for a white shirt and blue
jeans. The shirt clung to his body, showing that he was indeed still a man built like an ox
despite his age.
I gulped down my instant fear and lowered my gaze to the kitchen island, busying myself
with preparing the lunches. I was going to ignore his sleazy comment. It didn’t deserve a
response.
“Sto parlando con te troia. (I am speaking to you slut.)” He hissed when I didn’t
acknowledge his presence. I slowly lowered the butter knife to the table but kept it firmly
gripped in my hand as I glanced up at him.
“Is there a reason you are here Toni?” I asked politely, trying to keep the nerves at being
alone with this man out of my voice.
“Where is Giovanni? I need to discuss details about Boss’ wedding tomorrow.”
Shit. We hadn’t counted on Toni or Sal coming by the house today. Thinking quickly on my
feet, I used my knowledge of Giovanni’s businesses to pull the wool over his eyes.
“He is out. In town, taking care of some business at the restaurant.”
Toni huffed in irritation and folded his muscular arms across his chest. “Maximus then?”
Panic started to rise in me as I realised, I couldn’t avoid letting him know that I was here
alone.
“He just popped out but will be back any minute I am sure,” I lied, hoping that will be
enough to keep him from trying anything. I knew from the moment I met this man, he
wanted me. He had made it extremely obvious in every interaction we had ever had.
“Well, I suppose I will just have to wait then,” he turned and shut the kitchen door behind
him before he waltzed over to a kitchen bar stool and sat down keeping his leering gaze on
me the entire time. My heart started pounding in my chest as I kept my eyes cast down and
spread the butter of the bread. I did not think he would come and wait in here with me.
“Why don’t I go and call Mattio? He could make you comfortable in the living room with a
brandy while you wait?” I said sweetly.
“No. I am good here. I prefer this view,” he smirked as he picked up a strawberry and bit
into it roughly.
I remained silent as I tried to speed up my sandwich making so I could get away from this
leech as fast as possible. Grabbing the butter and ham off the counter, I turned to place
them back in the fridge and as soon as I shut the door Toni was standing behind it, making
me jump. A sadistic grin spread across his chest as my hand rested on my speeding heart
drawing his perverted gaze down to my breasts in my blue sundress.
“Such a shame about your papi. He was a useless bag of shit at the best of times but still to
be shot in front of his own children like that was brutal. Not that you cared,” he hissed as he
took a step towards me, forcing me to step back.
“W-what do you mean? Of course, I cared,” I stuttered as I glanced down at the bread knife I
had left on the counter and was now inching further away from. I didn’t care in the slightest
that my father was dead. I hoped he rotted in hell.
A low chuckle left his chest as he kept taking menacing steps towards me, forcing me back
into a corner in the kitchen. “You don’t fool me, Camilla. You are just some little whore who
spreads her legs for men to make them love you, aren’t you? Your papi told me what you
were good for.”
My breathing was becoming erratic, and my ears were pulsing with my heartbeat as panic
took over.
“First you fucked Giovanni and then Maximus. I am feeling left out,” he pouted, evil lurking
behind his eyes.
“I have never slept with Giovanni. I am marrying Maximus because we are in love. He will
be back any minute,” I choked out as my lower back hit the kitchen counter by the sink.
“Oh, you delusional slut, how could he love you? He loves to fuck you, I am sure. You are a
very tempting woman,” he sneered, pressing his huge frame up against my front, caging me
in. I could smell cigars and brandy on his breath, and it made me want to gag.
Using all my force, I tried to push him back while finding my voice. “Max will be back any
minute and he will kill you if you even lay a finger on me.”
He laughed loudly as he grabbed my jaw in his large hand firmly, forcing me to stare up at
his face. “You think I fear Maximus? I am two ranks higher than him in this family and you
no longer have the protection of being Giovanni’s fiancé or Francesco’s daughter. You
sealed your own fate, and I am finally going to enjoy seeing for myself what a little whore
you really are.”
He slammed his hard, dry lips onto mine using his hand to pull me into him and his greying
moustache scratched my skin. My eyes bulged wide as I tried to fight him off, but it was like
punching a steel door. I battered his chest with the bottoms of my fists as he groped my ass,
pulling my dress up to my waist. My body was in full fight mode as I knew I possibly had
seconds to try and get away from this man or at least scream for help from one of the
soldiers, but would they even help me? This was their consigliere. They were loyal to him
and would more than likely look the other way. I could only help myself. Grabbing his
throat with one hand I tugged him away from his lips to give me just enough room to
quickly jab him in his Adam’s apple, followed by a swift stamp on his foot. His grip on my
body loosened and I darted away from him making a run for the door.
A burning sensation from my scalp and aggressive yank backwards, caused my body to
smash straight back into his as he grabbed a handful of my hair to pull me back. My eyes
watered from the pain of his fist tugging at my hair.
“You fucking bitch. I am going to show you just who you are dealing with,” he growled in
my ear as he released my hair only to backhand me so hard across the face that I fell to the
floor. Before I had a moment to regain my senses from such a powerful blow, he had a
fistful of hair again, yanking me up to my feet and slamming me over the kitchen island. I
screamed loudly as my head pounded, cheek stung, and he grabbed my arms behind my
back forcing my chest to the cold surface. Tears were streaming down my face as his huge
frame leaned over my body and he hissed in my ear, “Mine now.”
I could see the bread knife on the counter just inches away from me but with my hands
tightly restricted behind my back I had no way of reaching for it. A sob escaped my mouth
when I felt him pull my knickers to the side and insert his fingers roughly, causing me to
cry out.
“Hmm, what’s wrong, beautiful? Do I not make you wet like Maximus?” He chuckled as the
pain from him forcefully pushing another finger in made me whimper. My mind went
numb, and I closed my eyes when I heard him unbuckling his belt. Once again, I was
reminded of what I was put on this Earth for. To be used for men’s pleasure. How could I
believe I would ever escape it?
∞∞∞
Maximus
As the SUV pulled up in front of the mansion, I couldn’t help the wide grin that spread
across my face, knowing I was about to get a kiss from Cami. This woman had turned me
into a soppy bastard from the moment I met her. Even being away from her for a few hours
was torture.
Liv and I climbed out the car and made our way upstairs to find Cami and the kids. When
we reached the playroom, Marco was being dressed up as a princess by a giggling Sani and
Raya but there was no sign of Cami. Immediately, my senses were on high alert.
“Oh wow! You make quite the damsel in distress Marco!” Liv chuckled as she walked into
the room.
I scanned it carefully and looked at the open bathroom door. “Where is Cami?”
“She is downstairs making the children’s lunch,” Marco replied in a professional tone that
just seemed ridiculous as he was wearing a tiara, fake earrings and pink lipstick. I nodded
with a smile and made my way down to the kitchen and that’s when I noticed something
didn’t seem right. Apart from the men stationed at the front door, there were no soldiers
around the lobby.
Picking up my speed, I rushed towards the kitchen, needing to see Cami. A strange,
unsettling feeling was prickling across my skin when I saw the kitchen door was shut. It
was never closed. Flinging it open, it took a second for my brain to register what I was
seeing. There was Cami bent over the kitchen island, her dress up to her waist, arms being
held behind her back, her eyes screwed shut in fear and pain. Standing behind her was
Toni. I watched as he pulled his fingers out from her and started to unbuckle his belt.
RAGE.
I had never felt anything like it before in my life. I lunged at Toni, growling loudly as I
tackled him to the floor in one violent attack. His huge frame smashed into the porcelain
ground beneath me and I saw first shock and then anger in his eyes. But I didn’t give him a
chance to react as my fist went flying into his face. Straddling his body, I pummelled his
cheek, nose and mouth, blood squirting out in many directions. He managed to swing his
own fist, connecting with my cheek but in my blind fury, I didn’t even feel its impact. He
was built like a tank and I knew he would be able to dominate me if I didn’t get him into a
delirious state quickly. Never stopping my vicious beatings, I thought he was starting to
lose consciousness but he suddenly took me by surprise when he leaned up and reached
behind my back pulling my gun out of my trousers. I reacted fast, grabbing his arm as he
tried to bring the gun around to aim at my head. I slammed his arm down on the floor
multiple times until the gun flew out of his hand and slid across the kitchen floor away from
us.
I could hear Camilla crying behind me and the sound distracted me enough to give Toni the
upper hand. He tossed me off him onto the floor, climbing on top of me and strangling my
throat. His bone crushing hands were in a fierce grip as I tried with all my strength to pry
his hands off me. I could feel my face turning red from the lack of oxygen as I stared up at
his mangled, bloody face.
“Stop! You’re killing him!” I heard Cami scream and suddenly she had jumped onto his back,
stabbing a knife into his shoulder. He released one hand from my throat, grabbing her hair
over his shoulder and slamming her head into the marble kitchen island. She fell to the
floor, knocked out and I growled, fighting back with the little strength I had left to kill this
mother fucker. But he was too strong. I could feel my vision blurring as white dots danced
across my eyes from the restriction on my throat. Panic started to set in.
“Get off him!” I vaguely heard a shout from behind Toni’s back but I couldn’t make out who
it was. Then Toni’s eyes bulged. His hands loosened their grip as I coughed and wheezed
for air. Blood seeped through his white top and I realised he’d been shot. Shoving him off
me as he spluttered and choked on his own blood, his eyes wide, I wanted to make sure he
died a painful death. Grabbing his face in my hands, I pushed my thumbs into his eye
sockets until they popped and blood trickled down his face. His screams were silent as he
choked on his blood and took his final breath.
I fell back on the floor and looked up for the first time at the person who had just saved my
life. The gun fell from her trembling hands as she dropped to her knees.
“Is he dead?” She whispered.
I crawled over to Cami who was still unconscious, blood trickling down from a small cut on
her forehead. I frantically checked for her pulse, bile rising in my throat. She was alive. She
would be okay.
I looked back over at the shaken woman who had just killed a man for the first time.
“Yes Olivia, Toni’s dead and you just saved my life.”
Innocent Murder
Olivia
I – I just killed someone.
I just shot a man in the back twice.
My whole body shook with adrenaline and shock as I fell to my knees, eyes glued on the
body of the man I just murdered. Murdered. I am a murderer. Blood started pooling from
beneath his body, staining the porcelain kitchen floor.
“Yes Olivia, Toni’s dead and you just saved my life.”
I heard the words, but I struggled to process them. Toni? As in Sal’s right hand man? I am
dead. I am more than dead when Sal finds out. But he was trying to kill Max. He would have
killed him if I didn’t stop him. I had no choice.
I dragged my gaze away from Toni’s body and saw Max cradling Cami in his arms, her eyes
closed and a trail of blood snaking down the side of her head. When I came down here to
help Cami make the kids lunch and heard loud grunting and a woman crying, I immediately
sensed danger. I ran into the kitchen and saw the huge man toss Cami off his back like a rag
doll and she fell to the floor. That’s when I caught sight of Max’s face, scarlet red as the life
was slowly being drained out of him. He was fighting against the man but he was losing. In
a blind panic, I saw the gun near my feet and picked it up shouting to the man to get off him.
But when he didn’t and I saw Max’s eyes roll into the back of his head, I pulled the trigger.
The second time was an accident. I was expecting a loud noise but the gun was silent so I
thought it hadn’t worked. It was only when the blood started seeping through the man's
top that the magnitude of what I had just done hit me.
“Olivia! Liv!”
I blinked rapidly as my brain caught up with Max’s voice. “I need you to go and get Marco.
Only Marco, okay? No one else can know about this. Got it?”
At that moment, Cami stirred in his arms and relief flooded through me. She opened her
eyes, gritting her teeth as her hand went straight to her wound on her head.
“Cami, take it easy,” Max soothed as I watched him move slightly into her view and brush
her hair from her face. Her beautiful blue eyes widened as she looked up at him and
remembered what had happened. She burst into tears and turned into his chest, hugging
him tightly as he stroked her hair and muttered something in Italian over and over. When
she calmed down a little, she looked over at Toni’s body and then up at me. Her bottom lip
quivered again.
“Liv! Thank you,” she cried.
I shook my head, still not understanding what was happening.
“Olivia. Listen to me. I have to get Toni’s body out of here. I need Marco. Can you go and get
him for me?”
I nodded slowly as I stood to my feet. I walked towards the door and opened it.
“Liv! Lock the door after you, okay?” Max shouted from the floor. I did as he asked and
made my way up to the playroom in a state of shock. I had no idea how I had just managed
to manoeuvre my body through the house and as I pushed open the playroom door, Marco
jumped up immediately with concern on his face.
“Signorina Jones? Are you okay?” He asked, walking towards me.
I glanced up at him. “Max needs you. In the kitchen.” My voice didn’t sound like my own as I
heard it fill the room. Was that me talking?
He nodded once and raced out the room, clearly sensing something was not okay.
“Liv, we are watching the Gruffalo! Come and sit with us,” Sani ordered from his bean bag in
front of the Plasma. I seemed to manage to find my way over to them and perch between
these two innocent children that had no idea what I had just done minutes ago. I stared
blankly at the screen as the little mouse character said, “Don’t call me good! I’m the scariest
creature in this wood.”
A small bubble of laughter formed in my throat and then before I knew it, I was laughing
hysterically from the shock. I had no idea why I was laughing but I think it was a coping
mechanism to avoid having to deal with the other emotions that were festering in my body.
Sani and Raya looked at me with amusement but not really understanding what I was
finding so hilarious. As I took some deep breaths and calmed down, I realised I was also
crying, tears were streaming down my face and I quickly wiped them away.
“If you think this is funny, wait until the Gruffalo runs away from the mouse,” Sani
announced.
I had no idea how long I sat there but the show was over and a superhero cartoon was now
playing when Marco and Max finally entered the room. I turned my head on their arrival
and saw the concern on their faces.
“Where’s Gio?” I asked. I suddenly felt so fragile. I wanted to feel safe again. And I only ever
felt safe in his arms. But he wasn’t here. Where was he? Suddenly, remembering that he had
gone to meet the Leones and still wasn’t home, I jumped up from the floor.
“He is on his way back. I just received a call. He is fine, Liv. He’s coming back,” Max said
carefully as he rested his hands on my shoulders. Tears welled up in my eyes as the relief
rushed over me and my knees went weak. Max quickly pulled me into his chest and hugged
me tightly which was exactly what I needed to hide my emotions from the children.
“Everything is going to be okay Liv. Why don’t you go upstairs and lie down for a bit? Marco
will watch the children,” he whispered.
I nodded slowly, grateful to have a moment to myself. “What happened to…his…”
“Don’t worry. It’s been taken care of.”
I pulled out of his embrace and stared into his green eyes. He had a swollen eye and lots of
cuts and bruises on his face as well as hand marks around his neck but you wouldn’t think
it hurt, the way he seemed more concerned about my mental state.
“Where's Cami? Is she okay?” I asked quickly.
“Yes. She is downstairs being checked over by our on-call doctor and nurse.”
“Okay,” I muttered. I had so many more questions suddenly brewing in my mind but I knew
now was not the time to ask them in front of the children.
“Do you want me to help you upstairs? Run a bath for you?” Max asked kindly but I shook
my head.
“No thank you. I can do it myself.”
He nodded and let go of my shoulders as I walked past him and made my way to our
bedroom. As if on autopilot, I strolled into the bathroom and turned on the taps to fill the
enormous bath, pouring in some bubble bath as I sat on the side. I stared at the water
flowing from the taps numbly until the level was close to the top and turned it off.
Shredding my clothes, I stepped into the balmy water and let it sooth my body and relieve
the tension every muscle held.
As soon as I closed my eyes the scene flashed in my mind again. The sight of Cami passed
out. Max’s face as he was being strangled to death. The weight of the gun in my hand. The
feeling of pulling the trigger. The blood.
I splashed my face with the water, rubbing my eyes knowing my mascara would be running
below them but not caring in the slightest. I killed a man. And not just any man. The
consigliere of the most powerful mafia families in Northern Italy. What was Toni doing?
Why was he trying to kill Max? What had happened? What did they do with his body? Will
Sal find out? Will he kill me? Will I go to prison?
Closing my eyes, I sank down below the water level, submerging my entire body. Holding
my breath under the water was the only thing I could do to stop the panic attack that was
rising within me. That and Gio. Where was he?
∞∞∞
Giovanni
I pulled out my phone as Angelo sped down the country roads towards the mansion. In my
complete shock and fury, I hadn’t contacted anyone that I was alright and I suddenly felt so
guilty, knowing they would all be worrying about me, especially Liv. I rang her mobile but it
went straight to voicemail. I frowned. She knew she always had to keep her phone on her
or I worried. What the hell.
I rang Max next, my heart pounding in my chest. From the moment, I heard his out of
breath voice on the phone, I knew something had gone down.
“Gio? You’re alright?” he panted.
“I’m alive. What’s going on? Why can’t I get through to Liv? Why are you panting?” I spoke
frantically.
“Toni’s dead.”
My eyes widened and I glanced over at Angelo who furrowed his eyebrows, hearing Max’s
voice through the phone.
“What?” Some shuffling noise could be heard and then a slam that sounded like a car door.
“Max? What the fuck is going on?” I was losing my patience as he huffed breathlessly down
the phone.
“Give me a fucking second to catch my breath. That bastard is heavy fuck,” he growled and I
don’t think my eyes could get any wider.
“Wait! You killed him?”
“No. I tried. I walked in on him about to rape Cami and beat the fucking shit out of him but
the guy was a bulldozer and got the upper hand. He knocked Cami out and was strangling
me to death.”
Rage boiled through my veins at the thought of Toni doing that to Cami and Max. But
knowing what I know now, I wasn’t fucking surprised.
“So, who killed him?”
There was a slight pause before the name I least expected to leave his lips entered my ear.
“Olivia.”
Panic, worry and anger mixed together made a lethal blend as I realised she must have
witnessed this. That she was in danger herself. That she was the one who had to kill Toni.
“What? How? Is she okay? Where is she?”
“She shot him. Thank God she came in when she did or I wouldn’t be here speaking to you
right now, man. She’s okay but she is shaken up badly. You need to get back here as soon as
possible.”
I glanced at Angelo, who slammed his foot on the accelerator in response. “Fuck!” I shouted
down the phone as I ran my hand through my hair. This fucking day. I should have been
there. I should have protected her from this. Sensing my thoughts, Max sighed deeply.
“You can’t protect her from everything Gio. Sooner or later, she is going to have to defend
herself or those she loves if she is going to be in our world. I am just pleased she deemed
me worthy enough to defend,” he chuckled but I couldn’t bring myself to see the funny side.
Liv just killed someone for the first time and knowing what she has witnessed in her life, I
knew she would be so hard on herself. And I am not even there to comfort her.
“Just check on her Max. Look after her until I get back. I should be home in half an hour.”
“Okay.”
“Did anyone witness it? Why the fuck weren’t my men around?” I snarled down the phone.
“I am guessing Toni sent them all off on a break. He obviously knew Cami was alone, the
fucking scumbag,” Max’s tone was laced with pure hatred and he took in a deep breath to
calm down before he continued. “No one saw. Only Marco knows. He just helped me shove
the body in the boot of a SUV. I will get rid of it later tonight.”
I ran my hand down my face as the stress built. What the fuck were we going to tell Sal? He
would definitely work out Toni was missing by morning. I couldn’t have him suspecting any
of us to ensure my plan would work.
As soon as we pulled up outside the mansion, my door was open, and I was already out of
the car before the engine had stopped. Darting into the house, I ran into the living room
where I could hear muffled voices and saw Cami led on the sofa, Max sitting next to her and
Dr Halsorino and a nurse attending to them both.
“Where is she?” I demanded as the nurse let go of Max’s battered face so he could answer
me.
“Upstairs. In your room.”
My heart was palpitating in my chest as I raced up the stairs to the top floor and sprinted
into the bedroom. When I found it completely empty, panic rose in me. “Liv?” I called out
but there was no answer.
I ran over to the closed bathroom door and tried to open it but when I realised it was
locked, I knocked softly. “Liv? It’s me. Open up.”
There was no response. My breathing became shallow as the panic started to consume me.
A flashback of a very similar scene entered my mind from two years ago. Me knocking on
mamma’s bathroom door with no answer. The steam coming out from the bottom of the
door. I broke the door down and found her trying to drown herself in the bath with a slit
wrist.
“LIV?” I boomed, now desperate to know she was okay. When there was still no answer, I
stepped back from the door and kicked it with so much force the lock shattered into pieces
on the floor. I dove into the steamy room just as her body shot out from under the water at
the intrusion. Without removing any of my clothes, I leapt into the bath and pulled her up
into my arms, holding her against my chest. Only then did I realise my whole body was
trembling with fear. Fear that I had lost her.
“Gio?” She whispered in disbelief as I pulled her head back from my chest, her make up
down her face and her hair soaking wet, she still looked as beautiful as ever.
“What were you doing?” I growled, unable to keep the hurt out of my voice that she might
have been trying to end it all. That she might not be able to handle this life.
“I-I was- holding my breath,” she stuttered. Her eyes filled with tears and her bottom lip
trembled. My eyes scanned her stunning green irises with those ember sparks.
“Why?” I asked more softly.
“I was t-trying to stop the panic attack,” she whispered, and I exhaled loudly. Our eyes
locked and I felt overwhelmed with love and admiration for this woman. She was my entire
universe, and I could never let anything happen to her. I would not survive losing her ever.
I now knew just a fraction of hurt mamma must be living with every day.
I leaned forward to capture her lips with mine, melting the world and all my anxiety away
as she wrapped her arms around my neck and threaded her fingers through my hair,
deepening the kiss. Within seconds, she was clawing at my soaked shirt, and I was
frantically undoing my trousers and standing up in the bath to remove them before diving
back down and pulling her onto my lap. She gasped into my mouth as I entered her quickly,
needing her to wash away the horrors of the day. She needed me too. That much was clear.
In this moment, all we would feel was each other. Our love. Our connection. Our pleasure. It
was what we both needed more than the air we breathed. Wrapping my arms around her
tightly, I moved in and out at a pleasurable pace as the tears rolled down her cheeks and I
kissed her passionately.
A Wedding or a Funeral?
Olivia
I dug my nails into his toned back as the euphoric feeling heightened to the precipice of
pleasure. This was my safe place. Being in his arms. Feeling him inside me. Every touch,
every kiss, every breath mixed with mine was calming me and the world was fading away.
It was just him and I.
I gripped my hands in his hair as the water splashed around us when he quickened his
thrusts to push us both over the edge of heaven. We both cried out at the same time,
gasping and panting our orgasms into the room.
I lowered my forehead against his and closed my eyes, trying to hold onto this moment in
time. I didn’t want to face reality. I didn’t want to come back down to Earth and face what I
had done.
“Bambola?” His silky, soft voice beckoned me back. “Are you okay?”
I slowly shook my head against his, never opening my eyes. I was scared of what I would
see. I had killed a member of his family. What if he never forgave me? What if this changed
everything?
“Liv, look at me. I am right here,” he whispered. Reluctantly, I opened my eyes and was met
by his beautiful pools of brown that shimmered with so much love. It made me immediately
want to cry again.
“I- I killed him. I killed Toni. I’m so sorry!” I whimpered as I let it all flow out of me, shaking
in his arms. He gripped me tighter to him, before cupping my face in his hands forcing me
to hold his gaze.
“You have nothing to be sorry about Olivia. You saved Max’s life. Toni was trying to rape
Cami. That asshole deserved everything he got. You rid the world of a monster.”
I released a shaky breath as I let his words sink in. Is that really what happened? He was
trying to rape Cami? It suddenly all made sense. The guilt dissolved and was replaced with
so much anger. How dare he do that to her? And then try to kill Max!
Seeing my change in mood, a small smile played on Gio’s lips as he leaned forward and
kissed me briefly.
“My little badass bambola,” he smiled.
I wasn’t ready for jokes yet. This was all still too serious. Even if he was a monster, he was
Sal’s consigliere and there would be extreme consequences for killing him, I was sure. Sal
didn’t strike me as the type of man who would forgive something like this easily. “What
about Sal? He will find out and he will- “
“He will do nothing. A dead man can do nothing.”
I froze hearing his harsh words and the seriousness of his tone. I pulled my head away from
his to search his face for meaning.
“What do you mean?”
His nostrils flared and he closed his eyes momentarily, clearly trying to get some control
over his sudden fury. When he opened them again, I saw his darkness. It should have
scared me, it would anyone else, but I knew it was not directed at me. It would never be
directed at me.
“Sal killed Vinny. He orchestrated the entire thing. Him and Toni worked with Francesco to
frame the Leones for killing my father.”
My mouth dropped open, and I gasped. Max was right. It was all Salvatore. Everything this
family had been through was because of him. “I am going to kill him, Liv.”
My stomach flipped as the fear of Giovanni taking on Salvatore caused dread to infect every
inch of my body. I had seen first-hand how ruthless his uncle was and clearly the lengths he
would go to get what he wanted. “I am so sorry Gio. But he is Boss! How are you going to do
it without him knowing you are coming for him? Please tell me you have a plan Gio and you
aren’t just going to pull your gun out and shoot him in the head? What about all his loyal
soldiers? What about the commission?”
My mind was working a thousand miles a minute as the panic started to flood through me.
He brushed my hair away from my face with a small smile. “Shh, I have a plan. Don’t worry.
It’s going to take some organising, but it will work. I know it will. The water is getting cold,
let's get out of here and find Max and Cami and then I will explain everything.” I nodded
slowly, my mind still whirling with everything that had happened today. As I stared up at
my gorgeous man all I could feel was grateful. He was alive and back in my arms. That was
all I cared about right now.
“Turn around and let me wash your hair,” he commanded. I did as he asked, his large hands
massaging my scalp and then tenderly rinsing it off with the shower head. I closed my eyes
as I let him take care of me, knowing he needed it as much as I did.
∞∞∞
“I fucking knew it!” Max shouted as he paced the private living room floor, hand on his hip
and other hand running through his long hair. His face was looking better after just a few
hours. He had a few butterfly stitches on his right cheek and lip and bruising around his
eye. The marks on his neck were no longer flaming red but it was still obvious he had been
in a pretty fierce fight.
Cami was sitting next to me on the sofa, a small bandage on her forehead. She seemed
surprisingly okay for someone who had just been sexually assaulted and nearly raped. She
seemed more concerned for Max than herself.
“I just said to Liv this morning that I had a feeling that was what the Leones wanted to say.
And there is evidence?” Max asked, looking over at Gio who was slouched in an armchair
with a whiskey in hand.
“Loads of it. I have it all. The Leones did a thorough job of getting every incriminating detail
so there was no way Sal could worm his way out of this one. There are voice recordings of
their meetings, phone calls, and emails. The lot. Toni was the one it was mainly going
through. The middleman so to speak. But Sal agreed to it all. It was all for his benefit. Get
rid of the Leones. Get rid of Vinny so he could get to mamma and me.” Gio rubbed his jaw as
he said the last sentence, emotion flicking through his eyes. I knew there was a part of him
that felt guilty. That he somehow felt like Vinny’s death was his fault. That it was because of
Sal’s obsession with him and Cecilia that Vinny was killed. Elle, Sani and Raya lost their
papi.
“Cecilia! We have to tell her,” I said quickly, realising that she was living with her husband’s
murder.
Giovanni sighed deeply, the world suddenly seeming too heavy for his shoulders. “I will but
not until it is safe to. This will kill her. She will blame herself.”
We all sat in silence for a few moments as the truth of those words sunk in. He was right.
This will tear her apart, but she had a right to know. She deserved to know who was
responsible.
“So, what is the plan? I can’t wait to kill the second of Satan’s spawn,” Max grinned with
malice. “Liv already put one down so let’s get on with the second.”
“I am going to take all the evidence to the commission first thing in the morning. They will
obviously accept that Salvatore is guilty of murdering his own underboss and also trying to
frame another mafia family for it. I will ask for permission to allow the Leones retaliation
rights. I cannot be seen as the one who will kill Salvatore as it will cause problems within
our family. I need soldiers and capos to believe that the Leones killed him and then the
truth can come out about what he did to Vinny through the commission, keeping my hands
clean in the whole thing.”
Max nodded. “That is a good plan. You will have everyone’s respect and loyalty as Boss
immediately and when it comes out that Sal killed Vinny, no one will see the need to
retaliate against the Leones. Vinny was loved by everyone. But don’t you want to be the one
to kill Sal? Instead of handing him over to the Leones?”
A slow, dark smile stretched across Gio’s face as he looked up at Max. “I will be. I have
already sorted it with the Leones. On the way to the wedding, we will be ambushed by
Leone men. They will take both Sal and I hostage. Max, you will then inform mamma what
has happened and bring her to the Leones. Tell her everything. She will want to watch him
die. At that very last minute, I will be released in front of Sal and the depth of my betrayal
will become clear. I will kill him myself.”
Max whistled and chuckled loudly. “Savage! Killed by his own son on his enemy’s territory.
There is no bigger fuck you then that!”
“I am not his son,” Gio growled. Max raised his hands up in apology and I sighed. I really
hope now more than ever that the DNA test came back negative. That Sal really was not his
son because I could see in Gio’s eyes that he was going to kill Sal no matter what that
envelope said. But I would hate for him to have to live with the fact he killed his own father.
“What about Toni?” Cami asked quietly next to me. My heart tugged at his name and the
reminder of what I had done but it was far less crippling now.
Gio and Max spared a glance at each other as they thought deeply. I knew I had added to
this mess. It was just another thing they had to try and manage without Sal becoming
suspicious.
“We act oblivious. Toni is missing. We know nothing,” Gio replied.
“Problem is… he was last seen here. By the men he sent on break. It will get back to Sal that
he was here today. What if we made Sal believe the Leone’s had him? Had captured him on
his way back?”
“It could work but it is a risk. He could call off the wedding to try and find Toni,” Cami
added.
Gio shook his head. “He won’t. He has waited thirty years to marry mamma. He won’t let
anything stop him. Even though the Leones are supporting this, I still don’t trust them. They
could play Sal and I off against each other if I give them too much information about Toni. I
would rather play dumb. He is missing. We know nothing.”
We all nodded in agreement. Once we went through some more of the fine details of the
wedding day, I felt completely exhausted. Cecilia would come here to get ready with us girls
while Gio and Max would go to Sal’s house to get ready with his uncle. We would tell her
everything and that the wedding would not be going ahead. We would wait for Max so we
knew that the plan had worked and Gio and Sal were at Leone's territory and then Cecilia
and Max would go along if she wanted to confront Sal before Gio killed him. It was a
confident plan but there were still so many risky factors at play. We were trusting the
Leones once again to keep their word. We were hoping Sal still went ahead with the
wedding without Toni. And we were praying that Cecilia would be onboard. My heart broke
for her as I thought about the pain she was about to endure.
∞∞∞
Cecilia
I stared blankly at the floor to ceiling mirror as two women pinned and tucked the silk
fabric of my ivory suit for my wedding day. My wedding day. It was almost laughable. I
refused to wear a wedding dress.
The sharp sting of a needle caught my thigh as one of the young designers pushed through
the fabric and I hissed at her. Her eyes widened and she started to apologise profusely but I
had already lost my patience.
“I’ve had enough. Get me out of this,” I snarled and they stood up from their positions and
carefully took the suit jacket off my body. It’s been two days since I haven’t been on my
medication, and I was starting to feel the effects. My patience was at an all-time low and I
felt my moods shifting like the breeze.
After changing back into my designer tracksuit, I returned to my position on the sofa of the
theatre room in Sal’s house and pressed play to the mind-numbing movie. This is where I
had hidden myself away for the last two days. Watching films, eating crap and drinking
wine. What else was there to do? I couldn’t bring myself to see my children. To have to
force the happiness on my face to avoid them worrying. I didn’t have the energy for it. I
didn’t have the energy for anything.
It must have been evening by the time Sal walked into the room with a pissed expression
seeing the state of me and the contents of bottles of wine and empty food packets. The staff
had informed me dinner was ready and Sal was waiting for me in the dining room, but I
ignored them. Just like I was ignoring his judgmental glare now.
“Cecilia. Enough. Look at the state of you. Get up and come and eat dinner now.”
“I’m not hungry,” I replied coldly, causing his jaw to tick and fists to clench at the sides of
his tailored trousers.
“I have been patient. I have given you space to get used to this change but my patience is
wearing thin now woman. All I asked is that you have dinner with me every night. One
thing.”
“And I said, I am. NOT. HUNGRY,” I shouted, my anger taking control. Why can’t he leave me
alone? I watched as his own control snapped and his eyes darkened with fury. He leaned
forward, grabbing my upper arm with force and yanking me up from the sofa. “Get off me!”
He ignored my thrashing and screaming as he threw me over his shoulder and marched out
of the cinema room, through the extravagant lobby towards the dining room. He threw me
down aggressively into a chair where a meal had been placed on expensive crystal plates
and laid out like a bloody fine dining experience. I glared up at him and folded my arms
across my chest in defiance as he pulled out his chair next to me and sat down. Without
saying a word, he picked up his knife and fork and started to eat.
After a few minutes of not touching my food, he looked up with a menacing glare. “Eat.”
“You may be forcing me to be here, but you cannot force me to eat!” I smirked.
“I am not forcing you to be here. You agreed to be with me. You chose this. Deep down
there is a part of you that has always wanted this and the sooner you get onboard the
better it will be for everyone.”
I burst out laughing which caused him to grind his teeth. “You are delusional! What choice
did I have? It was either my children’s happiness or mine! You knew full well I would do
anything for my children, and you used that against me. I will never want this! I will never
want you!” I screamed and, in a flash, he leapt from his seat and grabbed me around the
throat, pulling me up to my feet. His dark eyes glared down at me as he tightened his grip,
restricting my airways enough to hold me in place but not enough that I was gasping for air.
“You wanted me once before. You will want me again. You cannot deny that I was the best
sex of your life,” he growled. His face was inches from mine, his lips brushing against mine
seductively.
I narrowed my eyes as I prepared myself for the aftermath of my words. “No. Vinny was.”
To my surprise, he laughed. Loudly and sadistically.
“Liar!” He smashed his lips against mine, forcing his strong tongue into my mouth and
pulling me into his body. My fingers stretched down to the table as I gripped a knife and
held it against his throat, breaking the kiss. Panting heavily, we stared at each other as I
pushed the blade against his skin.
“Do it. Go on Cecilia. Slit my throat and be rid of me if that is what you really want,” he
released my neck and stood there, holding my gaze as my hand started to shake. A slow,
triumphant smile slowly tugged at the corners of his mouth when he knew I couldn’t do it.
“You see. Somewhere inside you, you still have feelings for me. And once I make you my
wife tomorrow, I will expect you to give into those feelings.” He took the knife from my
trembling hand and placed it back down on the table, before returning to his seat. Anger
and frustration reached their peak as he arrogantly took a bite of chicken from his fork,
smirking at me.
Seeing red, I grabbed my own crystal plate piled with food and threw it against the wall,
food and glass smashing everywhere.
“I HATE YOU!” I screamed hysterically before storming from the room.
“And I love you,” he shouted with an infuriating cackle, his booming voice following me
down the hall like the plague that I would never be rid of.
Hidden in plain sight
Olivia
“So, when do we tell her?” Cami whispered as I poured out four glasses of champagne in
the private living room of the Buccini mansion. I glanced over my shoulder at Elle and
Cecilia. Cecilia was dressed in her elegant ivory wedding suit and Elle was curling her hair.
There was a vacant look in her eyes as she stared at her reflection in the mirror in front.
Elle was doing a great job at talking her ear off about anything and everything under the
sun but Cecilia hadn’t uttered a word all morning.
“Soon. Gio told me to wait until he messages me but just look at her Cami. She is miserable.
This feels like we are torturing her for no good reason. The sooner we tell her this wedding
isn’t happening the better.”
Cami nodded in agreement as we both picked up the flutes and made our way over to them.
“You look gorgeous Cecilia,” Cami said as she handed her the champagne flute which Cecilia
took without saying a word. She knocked back the champagne in one go and the three of us
shared a concerned look. I couldn’t keep up the façade. It wasn’t right.
“Cecilia. We have something to tell you,” I said carefully as Elle’s head snapped up at mine.
Her eyes giving me a ‘what the fuck are you doing?’ look. I shrugged and pointed to Cecilia
and Elle sighed deeply as she looked back at her mamma.
Squatting down in front of her mother, Elle took the empty champagne glass from her
hands before holding her beautifully manicured hands in hers. “Mamma?”
Cecilia looked down at Elle for the first time and gave her a small smile. “Oh Elenora. You
look lovely my dear.”
Elle smiled but it didn’t reach her eyes as the magnitude of what she was about to say to
her mum, caused her voice to catch and she cleared her throat. Elle had taken the news of
who had killed her papi badly but she knew she had to be strong for her mother right now.
“Mamma, the wedding is off.”
Cecilia shook her head slowly and held her hand up to Elle’s face. “How many times must I
say it my love. I have to do this for you. Let me do this for my children.”
“No mamma. You don’t have to. You won’t have to. Salvatore will not be at the altar to
marry you.”
Cecilia’s perfectly groomed eyebrows furrowed as she looked from Elle up to me. I moved
around so I perched on the coffee table next to Elle for support. “What do you mean? Why
not?”
“Mamma, Sal…Sal killed…” Elle’s voice broke as she choked on her words and tears sprang
to her eyes. Cecilia’s concerned eyes darted from her daughter to me in question.
“Cecilia. This is going to be very difficult to hear but we want you to know we are all here to
support you and we love you. Giovanni is dealing with it and it’s over. You will never have
to see Sal again.”
Cecilia suddenly stood up, impatience and unease evident on her confused features.
“What are you talking about? What happened?”
I took a deep breath as Cami handed Elle a tissue to wipe her eyes.
“Cecilia, Gio met with the Leones. They had gathered evidence over the last two years to
find out who was trying to frame them for Vinny’s murder. They gave it all to Gio.”
Cecilia froze and regardless of the blush that had been applied to her cheeks just minutes
ago, she looked deathly pale.
“What? It was the Leones. They killed my Vinny.”
I shook my head carefully, maintaining eye contact with her. She visibly gulped.
“No mamma. It wasn’t them. It was Salvatore. Sal and Toni worked with the Aianis to kill
papi and frame the Leones for it,” Elle managed to whimper.
Cecilia stumbled back on her heels shaking her head until her legs hit the sofa and she fell
down with a gasp.
“No,” she whispered, her eyes wide but looking right through us. “No. That’s not possible.”
I raced to her, falling to my knees in front of her as I took her hands in mine, forcing her to
see me. “It is true. Sal killed Vinny. That is what the alliance was about. He had promised
Gio would marry Camilla in return for their men attacking Vinny. Sal planned the whole
thing.”
Tears sprang to her eyes as she continued to shake her head.
“No. NO! Why? Why would he do that? Why would he kill my Vinny? He loved him. He was
his brother!” Cecilia jumped up from the sofa as she paced the room hysterically, her
whole-body trembling.
None of us spoke as we let her come to the realisation herself. I couldn’t break her heart
more than it already was. I couldn’t force the words out of my mouth. She suddenly
screamed. A noise that was full of so much pain and heartbreak as she fell to her knees and
Elle rushed to her side, cradling her in her arms as Cecilia broke down in tears and
unbearable cries.
Tears left my own eyes as I watched the strongest woman I know, fall apart in front of me.
This was so unfair. She didn’t deserve this. None of them deserved this. All because of one
man’s selfishness. All because of one man’s obsession. Salvatore Buccini was just like
Henry. Of that I was certain.
It felt like the longest time before Cecilia’s wails simmered down to sobs and Elle helped
her up off the floor, back to the sofa. I poured her a glass of water and placed it on the table
in front of her as her red-rimmed eyes stared at it without blinking.
“It was me, wasn’t it?” Her voice was barely audible. “He killed him because of me.”
No one confirmed it. We didn’t need to. We all knew what Sal’s reasons were. She released
a shuddering breath as she glanced up at me for the first time since she heard the words
that changed everything.
“What is Gio going to do?”
“He has informed the commission. They have agreed to let the Leones retaliate. They will
stage an ambush on Gio and Sal and take them to the Leone estate. That is when Gio and the
Leones will confront Sal and he will kill him,” I said as calmly and clearly as I could.
She nodded slowly. I wasn’t sure if she really understood or registered my words as that
vacant expression returned to her face. My phone started vibrating on the table and I stood
up and walked out of the room to take it when I saw it was Giovanni.
“Hey, you can tell mamma now. We are at Leones place. They have Sal in an interrogation
room. Everything is going to plan,” his voice was a low whisper, and I bit my lip.
“We’ve already told her. I’m sorry but I couldn’t hold it in anymore seeing what this was
doing to her.”
He sighed, “How did she take it?”
“Not great as expected. I think she has gone into shock now. I will give her some time and
then ask if she wants to see Sal before…you know.”
“Ok. No rush. The Leones will be torturing Sal before they let me at him anyway,” he replied
nonchalantly. My gut twisted at those words. Torturing. I knew Sal deserved everything he
was about to get and more, but I still hated the images that came into my mind.
“Are you okay?” I asked softly. Gio was strong and he was angry, but this still couldn’t be
easy for him. Sal was still his family.
“I’m good. I will be once he is out of our lives and go no longer manipulate or fuck with my
family,” he growled. “I have the paternity test.” My eyes widened. I didn’t know it had come.
“It arrived this morning. I haven’t opened it. I don’t know if I can.”
My heart broke for him and I wished I could hug him. “Remember whatever is in that
envelope changes nothing. Vinny was your papi. No matter what.”
“I love you bambola. I have to go.”
“I love you too. Be safe.”
He hung up and I stared at the phone, chewing my lip. I couldn’t wait for this day to be over.
“Liv! She’s gone!” Elle came running out into the lobby with panic.
“What? Who?”
“Mamma! She said she wanted to use the bathroom. I just went in and she climbed out the
freaking window!” She screamed as she bolted to the front door. Cami and I raced out after
her.
“She took the wedding car! It’s gone!” Elle gripped her hair in her hands as she looked
down the driveway. Angelo came running out towards us.
“Olivia. Is there a problem?” Angelo asked.
“Cecilia. She has gone.”
He turned his back to us, pulling out his mobile and speaking aggressively in Italian. When
he got off, he turned back to me. “She is with Nik and has taken the wedding car. She has
asked to go to the Leone mansion.”
Shit. I pulled out my phone and started to frantically type out a text to Gio, warning him his
mother was on her way.
“What do we do now?” Elle asked.
“You need to stay here with the kids and in case she comes back. I will go with Angelo and
see if we can catch up with her car. Cami, Max is on his way here so you might as well wait
and come up with him.” I felt like I had to take some control of this situation as the two
women stared at me wide eyed and nodded.
There was still one wedding car parked on the driveway with a driver ready to go inside.
We had needed to make the whole wedding look authentic to the rest of the mafia family.
Only Nik, Marco and Angelo were aware of the true plan to kill Salvatore today as they were
the only men Gio truly trusted and were more loyal to him than his uncle.
Angelo nodded at me as we skipped down the steps, I grabbed the hem of my blush pink
bridesmaid dress and slid into the backseat of the car as Angelo climbed in next to me.
“Leone estate,” Angelo ordered the driver as I frantically typed away on my phone to Gio to
let him know the new plan. The car pulled aggressively from the gravel and made its way
out of the grounds and onto the roads of Verona. Gio hadn’t replied to my messages, but I
hadn’t expected him to. He would be busy killing his uncle/father most likely. My battery
warning symbol flashed on my phone, and I cursed before the screen went black.
I had no idea what would be going on in Cecilia’s head right now. Was she going to try and
stop Gio? Was she going to confront Sal or kill him herself? My heart was pounding with the
adrenaline at this situation. Leaning forward to look between the two front seats, I peered
out the front window ahead to try and spot any sign of Cecilia’s wedding car down the road
in front. And that is when my heart stopped. I glanced up into the rear-view mirror and was
met with the pair of bright blue eyes that haunted my nightmares under a black driver’s
cap, staring straight at me.
My whole body turned to ice. Henry.
Veil of Betrayal
Giovanni
I never knew I could possess so much control.
Sitting across from the man who killed my papi and the man I was convinced put a hit on
Olivia, I grinned as he put in his cufflinks and pulled on his Tom Ford tailored cream jacket.
The only thing that was keeping me calm and collected was the knowledge that by the end
of today, he would no longer be breathing.
Staring up at his smug face as he checked himself out in the mirror made me want to laugh.
He had no idea. No idea that he was about to face his death at my hands. He thought he had
won. Everything he has ever done, was for this moment in time. He had mamma. He was
marrying her. He was Boss. He had his heir. The Aianis were our allies not by choice but
still. He was one step closer to destroying the Leones. Yet all of this was an illusion. He had
achieved none of it.
“Still no word from Toni?” Max asked as he leaned against Sal’s bar in his gentleman’s room
where we were all getting ready.
A deep frown set on Sal’s face. “No. He wouldn’t miss this. Something is not right.”
I took a slow sip of my whiskey before answering, “Do you still want to go ahead with the
wedding? Or shall we try and track him down?”
Sal coughed gruffly and cleared his throat as he smoothed down his jacket. “No. We will go
ahead. If he still hasn’t shown up by the end of the day, then we will start the search party.”
I smirked into my glass. Selfish. I didn’t expect any less from him. Toni had been his best
mate since they were kids and his right-hand man for twenty-seven years. Yet, he has no
concern for his whereabouts on his wedding day. Just more proof that Salvatore Buccini
was only ever out for himself.
“I wonder what Vinny would think about all of this,” I couldn’t help but prod the beast. Sal’s
dark eyes narrowed at me through his reflection in the mirror at my mention of papi.
“What do you think he would think?” Sal spun the question back on me. Clever. He was
checking my loyalty.
“I think anything that makes mamma happy he would be okay with. And she is happy
right?” I asked.
A fake smile plastered on his face as he turned to me. “Of course. She has never been
happier. Though I am not sure her meds are entirely accurate. She has seemed more…
emotional as of late. I shall investigate it after the wedding.”
Irritation brewed within me. I was sure my mother’s moods towards him had nothing to do
with her medication and more to do with the hate she possessed for her brother-in-law. I
shuffled in my seat and sat up taller. Now to test the waters on the topic of Olivia.
“Weddings all around in the Buccini family,” I smiled as I raised my tumbler to Max. He
returned my celebration by raising his and Sal turned to pick his own glass up. “First you
and mamma, then Max and Camilla. Makes me think I should pop the question too.”
For a split second, Sal’s hand froze on its way up to bring his drink to his mouth. It was the
smallest reaction, but I caught it.
“Though I am not sure Olivia is perhaps the right woman to be married to a Boss,” I added.
Max’s eyes widened slightly until he caught my eye and realised what I was doing. Sal
turned to me, suddenly fully invested in our conversation. “I thought she was the love of
your life?”
I shrugged, “I may have been letting how good her pussy tastes affect my judgement. I don’t
think she is cut out for this world after all, but we will see.”
I had never seen a wider grin on Boss’ face. “I could have told you that Giovanni. But I guess
the truth always comes out eventually.”
I pursed my lips together to avoid the laugh I was suppressing at his words. There was no
doubt in my mind that he wanted Olivia out of my life, and he would go to any lengths to
achieve it. Even more reason to end him.
“I couldn’t agree more,” Max said with a grin as he looked over at me.
“Very wise words indeed, papi,” I said calmly even though it physically hurt me to call him
that, but it had the desired effect. His face broke out into a genuine smile when heard that
word from my lips. “Shall we go? We must not keep your bride waiting?”
***
The wedding car was speeding down the cliff roads and I glanced up ahead when I saw the
junction that I had agreed with the Leones would be the ambush point. I had managed to
persuade Salvatore to be unarmed in his wedding suit, promising that I had my gun and his
soldiers had theirs. He agreed easily to my surprise, his genuine happiness helping to
distract him.
“You know when I first saw your mamma, I knew I would marry her one day,” he suddenly
interrupted the silence in the car and I turned to look at him. He was staring out of the
window, deep in thought. “I saw her first. She was always meant to be mine. But life doesn’t
always work out the way we want it. Sometimes, we must fight for what we want because
life doesn't hand you everything on a plate, son.”
I stilled at his words. It was almost a confession. He didn't know that I would be able to
read between the lines. That I would understand the true meaning of his words.
Suddenly, the breaks of the car slammed on as Sal’s soldier noticed the convoy blocking the
road ahead. Sal’s eyes glazed over when he saw Riccardo and Lorenzo standing in front of
several cars with their arms folded and sinister smiles.
“Fucking Leones,” Sal hissed as I pulled out my gun from the back of my trousers. “Pass me
your gun,” he demanded his driver who hesitated slightly before passing it back to Sal. Shit.
I wanted him unarmed for this.
“Plan Boss?” I asked frantically as I looked out the back window at two other SUVs that had
suddenly blocked us in from behind. Sal growled when he saw it too.
“Take as many of them out as we can. If they get too close, we jump.”
My eyes widened as I realised what he meant. “Off the fucking cliff?”
“Si. If they capture us, it's game over Giovanni. At least if we jump, we have a chance of
surviving.” He flung open the car door and opened fire on the Leone men. I did the same,
ensuring I missed every time. This was not going to fucking plan. I ducked behind the
shelter of the bullet proof door as bullets plummeted our way.
Fuck. I couldn’t let Sal get shot here. I couldn’t let him jump either. It was a huge risk but I
had to knock him out. Keeping low, I snuck around the back of the car hoping the Leone
soldiers behind us didn’t open fire on my ass or I was dead. Sal was too distracted shooting
forwards to notice me approaching behind. Using the handle of my gun, I hit him hard on
the back of the head and he fell to the dirt floor, unconscious. Glancing at the Buccini driver,
I saw blood all over the window of the car and realised he had already been taken out.
“Tieni il fuoco! Salvatore è fuori! (Hold fire! Salvatore is out!)” I shouted. This was the
moment it could have all gone wrong. Had I put too much trust in my enemy? They could
easily kill me themselves right here and take down the whole Buccini family. The only
security I had is that the commission had only given approval for Sal’s death and not mine.
The gun shots stopped. I slowly stood up, with my hands in the air as two Leone soldiers
came running towards our car. They tied Sal’s hands behind his back and threw a hooded
bag over his head before dragging him over to a SUV. I walked up to Riccardo and Lorenzo.
“Thought you said he wouldn’t be armed?” Lorenzo narrowed his eyes on me.
“He wasn’t. He took his soldier’s gun.”
“Well, that was fast thinking to knock him out or we might have killed him on this fucking
dirt road and where is the fun in that?” Riccardo grinned.
I climbed into their car with them and we all drove back to the Leone’s mansion. As soon as
we arrived, I walked away from the men to ring Olivia. There were always two soldiers on
my guard, watching me suspiciously as I spoke in a hushed voice down the phone. As soon
as I was done, I pocketed it and walked into their estate. The soldiers led me down to the
cellars below the house which is where their interrogation and torture rooms were. I was
put in the room next to where they were holding Sal.
After a few minutes, Lorenzo came in. We did not like each other. That much was clear.
Where Riccardo seemed to enjoy at least trying to be civil towards me, Lorenzo never hid
his feelings. And they were fucking mutual.
“He has just woken up. Father is going to start the torture now and I had the idea of making
it seem legit that you were being tortured too,” he smirked. I chuckled as I folded my arms.
“And let me guess? You offered to be the one to do it?”
“Of course. We want him to truly believe you are dying right?”
I huffed loudly. “Nothing to my face. It’s my best feature,” I smirked.
He walked over to a cabinet that was full of torture devices and held out two options. A
leather whip with metal spikes attached or a steel poker. We had one of those ourselves.
You scorch it until it glows and scar the skin. Hurts like a mother fucker but it would leave
less scaring than the whip.
“Poker,” I shrugged as I sat down on the metal chair and rolled up my trouser leg. I wasn’t
about to let him scold just any part of my body. Lorenzo’s eyebrows raised at my choice but
a sadistic smile spread across his face as he used a blow torch to heat the poker until the
end glowed a vibrant orange.
He strolled over to me when it was ready and I mentally prepared myself for the
insufferable pain of burning flesh.
“Remember, the louder you are the better,” Lorenzo chuckled before he slammed the poker
up against my calf muscle. I roared louder than I normally would at such pain and hissed as
my skin sizzled against the steel.
Lorenzo removed it and I took some deep breaths. “Again,” I muttered.
He pushed it against the same wound which felt like I was being burnt alive as I screamed
in agony and groaned until he pulled it away. If this was a true torture, I wouldn’t be
making a sound. Biting down on my tongue rather than give them the satisfaction of
hearing a peep out of me but that wasn’t the purpose. I wanted Sal to believe I was being
tortured so it would make my deceit so much sweeter when I walked in there to kill him.
∞∞∞
Salvatore
The back of my head was fucking throbbing as I came around to darkness. Suddenly, the
fabric over my head was whipped off me and I was confronted with bright lights and the
face of my nemesis. Riccardo Leone.
I didn’t have time to say a word, before his fist connected with my cheek and I spat blood
out onto the cement floor of my interrogation cell.
“Nice to see you too, Amico,” I smirked, blood lining my teeth before he hit me again.
“If you are that pissed off I didn’t send you an invite to my wedding, you could have just
called,” I chuckled as his smile grew.
“Oh, you still believe you are getting married today. That’s precious.”
Anger rose in me that I was in fact here and not at my fucking wedding. The one I had
waited thirty fucking years for.
Riccardo whistled and laughed, shaking his head as he walked over to a cabinet and leaned
against it.
“Cecilia Buccini. I don’t blame you. She is one fine piece of ass. If I wasn’t happily married
already, I would probably have taken her for myself.”
I hissed at him through clenched teeth. My jaw tense as my eyes burned with hate. She was
mine. No other man will ever have her.
“Tell me Sal. Did you really believe that she would jump straight into your arms as soon as
you killed her husband or were you playing the long game?”
I clicked my tongue and glared at him. As if I would ever admit that I killed Vin to him. If I
did make it out of this alive, I wouldn’t ever risk CeCe or Giovanni knowing the truth.
Yes, I planned the murder of my only brother. He didn’t deserve everything he had. He was
born the lucky one. He had charm and charisma. Everyone who met him loved him. My papi
even preferred him to me. I was the first born so I was the heir. I had to live up to every one
of my father’s high expectations whereas he could do whatever the fuck he wanted. He was
mamma’s favourite too, the crazy old bat. She made him soft. She made him lovable. And
then he stole the only person I had ever wanted love from. Cecilia. I found her first. She was
mine before she was his. Yet, he wormed his way in and stole her from me. He turned her
against me. And when he started to do the same to Giovanni, I knew it was time to get my
revenge. I waited patiently for years. Watched him have it all. The loving family. The perfect
woman. The respect of our men. But I would not allow him to take Giovanni from me. He
was my son. He was my heir.
That little gold-digging slut was trying to take him too. But that should all be solved by the
end of the day. The fact Giovanni was even doubting his relationship with her was a fucking
bonus. Hopefully he won’t even go looking for her when he finds out she’s missing. That
psychotic little prick better stick to his word and take her far away from here. Hopefully, he
kills her. He has it in him. You can see it in his eyes.
“No longer in the mood for talking Salvatore?” Riccardo sneered, as he fastened metal
spiked knuckle rings to his hand. “You see… I know what you did. I know you plotted to kill
Vincenzo with Francesco and tried to frame us for it. What a convenience that Francesco is
no longer with us to back up the story.”
I refused to open my mouth. I had no doubt he was probably knew the truth and was not
bluffing. He would have been looking into Vin’s murder the moment he heard I was pinning
it on him. Which is why I needed them gone. Him and his son.
After a few rounds of beatings, the metal spikes piercing my jaw and stomach from his
blows, I panted loudly.
“What do you want, Riccardo?” It was time to negotiate my release. I would find something
this fucker wanted more than my head. Everyone had their price.
Suddenly, a loud roar and painful scream echoed through the walls. My eyes widened and
my nostrils flared as I knew it was Giovanni.
“Name your price Leone. Anything you want as long as you release me and my son.”
His eyebrows shot up in surprise at my words and a sadistic grin stretched over his scarred
face, making him look ten times more monstrous.
“Son? Well, that does explain a lot doesn’t it, Salvatore?” I growled in his face when I heard
Giovanni screaming from whatever torture they were giving him. “The truth. That is all I
want.”
I narrowed my eyes at him with distrust. The truth?
“About what?” I groaned through the blood that was pooling in my mouth.
“About everything,” His blue eyes sparkled with excitement.
“You want me to admit I killed my brother? You want me to clear your name with the
commission? I would never kill my brother. But I know it wasn’t you who did. I know it was
Francesco. That is why I put a bullet in his skull myself.”
Riccardo folded his arms across his chest as he chuckled, shaking his head. “Oh Sal. That is
almost believable. But I have the proof you see.” He walked over to a laptop and pressed
play. Toni’s voice filled the room as well as Francesco’s as I listened to the two fucking
idiots speaking so openly about Vin’s murder and our alliance. My jaw ticked.
“You have Toni?” I hissed, realising it was my consigliere that has betrayed me.
“I wish I could say I did. I would love to torture that prick but unfortunately not.”
Suddenly, the door swung open and my eyes widened when I saw Giovanni strolling in. I
would have been happy to see he was well if it wasn’t for the dark, evil look in his eyes that
was directed at me.
“Giovanni. Whatever they have told you is a lie. I did not kill Vinny. I would never, he was
my brother,” I said calmly, trying to tug at the cable wires around my wrists.
Giovanni cocked his head to the side as he leaned over and pressed a button on the laptop.
My voice filled the room. It was a private conversation I had with Toni at Aiani's residence.
I felt the colour drain from my face as I said the words, “Don’t even bother putting Vin in a
coffin. Just bury him in the dirt.”
Within seconds, Giovanni had kicked me in the chest, causing the chair I was sitting on to
fall backwards and he was on top of me, pounding my face with his fists. I was barely still
conscious, my eyes barely open and head spinning when he finally climbed off me and
pulled my chair upright.
“You think you are so clever, Boss. You think you pulled the wool over all our eyes? I have
known for days. I know what you did. Toni took a trip to the meat grinder. And you will be
joining him very soon.”
My heart sped up as the realisation hit me. This was all planned. Giovanni betrayed me. He
worked with the Leones.
My blood boiled at the disrespect and deceit of my own son.
“I am your father! How dare you!”
I could just make out his face as he bent down to my level. “Let's find out, shall we?” I
squinted my swollen eyes as I saw him pull out an envelope from his suit jacket, “I got a
paternity test.”
Ripping it open, I could barely focus as he stood up straight and scanned the page.
“Looks like you were wrong.”
I shook my head as my heart plummeted in my chest.
“No. You are my son,” I muttered, spitting blood onto the floor.
“According to this DNA test, I am not.” He bent down again and stared straight into my eyes.
“Even if it said you were, you would never be my father. Vinny was a far better man and
father than you would ever be and I would kill you to avenge him regardless.”
I dropped my head to my chest as I let his words sink in. Just at that moment, the door flew
open and a vision in white stormed into the room. I squinted my eyes as I saw the most
beautiful woman in the world to me, her eyes bloodshot and only hatred behind them.
“CeCe?” I whispered.
Her hand slammed across my face in one powerful slap, causing my head to whip to the
side.
“You bastard!” She screamed.
The Devil’s Deceit
Olivia
I was frozen in my seat as our eyes locked. No. How could it be? How did he find me?
Time stood still as he kept his eyes on me in the rear-view mirror. He knew I knew it was
him. My heart was pounding in my chest and all I could hear was ringing in my ears as
panic consumed me. As soon as I moved my eyes from him, I knew everything would
change. He would do something...
I slid my hand discreetly towards Angelo’s leg next to me and nudged him, keeping my eyes
on Henry the entire time. I felt Angelo move his head towards me and I knew he would see
the terror on my face. Within seconds, Angelo swiftly reached into his suit jacket to retrieve
his gun, but Henry was fast. He turned and shot my bodyguard in the head, blood sprayed
all over me and the car windows as Angelo’s body slumped down on the seat. I screamed,
bringing my knees up to my chest and cowering in the corner of the chair. I tried frantically
to open the door to throw myself out of the car. I didn’t care how fast Henry was zooming
down this road, I would rather take my chance than stay in here with him. But, of course, it
was locked.
“Livvy! Baby. Calm down,” his voice was soft and smooth, as if he hadn’t just killed a man
seconds ago.
My breathing was erratic as my chest moved up and down in panted breaths as I stared at
Angelo’s lifeless body. His eyes were still open, with a gunshot wound in his forehead. Tears
sprang to my eyes as sobs escaped my lips.
“I have missed you so much, Livvy. You look good. I like your hair,” Henry smiled at me
through the mirror, and I stared at him, wide-eyed as fear crippled me.
“W-where are y-you taking me Henry?” I choked out as I tried to recognise my bearings or a
place we might be near. But only trees surrounded us. I had no idea where we were.
“Somewhere we can be together. You enjoyed the chase didn’t you, Livvy? You loved
making it hard for me. But I found you in the end, just like you wanted me to. I will always
find you.”
He removed the black driver’s hat that had covered his face and ran his hand through his
shaggy blonde hair. He had a stubbled jaw and tired skin. But his eyes still shone brightly
like diamonds. Cold pools of ice.
My brain was frantic as I tried to think of a way to get away from him. I looked over at
Angelo’s body and saw his hand still under his suit jacket. A gun. Angelo would have a gun
on him. But I was too far away. Henry would see me reach for it and could shoot me before I
could even get to it. Then I glanced down and saw on his other arm that was resting on the
chair between us the black alarm watch on his wrist.
My heart flipped in my chest. I could send an alert. It was bound to go to Giovanni or Max.
But I needed to distract Henry.
I sat up slightly in my seat, his eyes darting at my movement in the mirror.
“How did you find me Henry?”
A sadistic smile made me gulp as I slowly inched my hand towards Angelo’s watch.
“I knew you weren’t in the UK after I ransacked your bitch of a best friend’s house. I found
your scrapbook you made with her when you were kids. All the places you wanted to visit.
But the fucking pigs were on my back so I couldn’t exactly hop on a plane discreetly.”
I tugged at the band of the watch slightly as he spoke, pulling Angelo’s arm towards me. “So,
I couldn’t believe my luck when some mafia bloke cornered me in an underground bar one
night. Told me you were in Italy and his boss would pay for me to fly out by private jet to
come and get you.” I froze at his words.
“Who?”
“Your boyfriend's father. Salvatore something.”
Oh my god.
“I’ve been here for a week, Livvy. Growing impatient to see you. But Toni said I had to wait
until today. That today was the day.”
I hit the screen of the watch and saw the red dot that would send an alert. I pressed it
quickly and looked back up at Henry. His eyes had narrowed and he suddenly looked
pissed. That look I was all too familiar with.
“What are you doing, Livvy?”
It was now or never. He slammed the brakes of the car as I dived at Angelo’s body for his
gun. The sudden jolt of the car caused me to fall into the footwell before I could pull the gun
from the harness. Henry had climbed into the back and was now on top of me as I
scrambled to reach up for the gun in Angelo’s jacket.
“Don’t be a fucking idiot Liv!” Henry growled as he grabbed my arm and pulled it above my
head. He pulled Angelo’s gun out of his jacket and smirked at me before throwing it into the
front of the car. Without missing a beat, I headbutted him hard in his nose twice until he
groaned and shifted on top of me, sitting back. I booted him in the privates as I scrambled
over to the front seat and opened the passenger door, grabbing the gun as I went.
Racing through the trees, my heart was thundering in my chest and my eyes scanned my
surroundings frantically for any sign of human life. Every so often, I would look over my
shoulder to see if Henry was after me but all I could see were trees. Losing my balance, I
tripped over a large tree root and fell face first. Quickly, I shuffled to my feet and hid behind
a large tree trunk, the gun in my hands. My chest was rising and falling in shallow breaths
as I tried to focus on keeping my fear and panic at bay.
“Livvy, you just love to tease me, don’t you, you little slut? I am sick of these games you
keep playing. Don’t make me lose my patience!” His angry voice sent a shiver down my
spine, and I held my breath. I had only ever shot a gun once and I managed to hit my target
easily, but this was different. Toni wasn’t moving and I had a clear aim.
I heard twigs snap close to the tree I was hiding behind and bile rose in my throat. Knowing
I only had this one chance made my hands shake as I held the gun, poised ready to shoot.
When I heard another branch snap even closer, I jumped out from behind the tree and shot
at where I thought Henry was standing. But he wasn’t there. Suddenly, I felt a hand around
my mouth and my body was slammed back into his chest. I struggled against him, but he
ripped the gun from my hand, another shot fired into the air as he tossed it away.
He lifted me with a strong arm around my waist and his other hand still over my mouth,
muffling my screams, but I was not going to give up. I fought against him, trashing my arms
and legs. Without warning, we both fell backwards towards the forest floor and a sharp
pain struck my head before everything faded to black.
∞∞∞
Giovanni
“You bastard!” The sound of mamma’s violent slap echoed around the room and I could feel
her fury and hurt radiating from her body.
“CeCe,” Sal’s voice was soft, almost pleading.
“Don’t! Don’t you dare! You are the most vile, despicable man who has ever lived. Vinny
loved you! You were his older brother. You were supposed to protect him!” Her voice broke
with emotion as her body trembled. I stepped forward to pull her back from him but she
shrugged me off, never taking her accusing glare off his bloody face.
“He took everything from me!” Sal snapped, his body lunging forward in his chair, which
was hopeless as he was tied so tightly to it, there was no chance he could get free.
“He took nothing from you! I never belonged to you. I was never yours in the first place.
You were a drunken mistake that I have regretted every day for the rest of my life,” she spat
and he roared at her aggressively, spitting blood on the floor again.
“How could you ever think I could love you, Sal? You are not capable of love. You are not
deserving of it. You will die knowing that no one loved you. I don’t love you and never have.
Gio doesn’t love you. Everything you set out to do has failed. It was all for nothing!” She
screamed in his face.
The evilest sound vibrated from his chest as he started to laugh. Soon, he was roaring like a
mad man as mamma stepped back, shaking her head. I glared at him as I watched whatever
he found so amusing possessing him like a demon.
“You are wrong CeCe.” He looked up at us through his half-closed eyes that had swollen
from my beating. “I achieved one thing.”
My heart started thundering in my chest when his eyes locked with mine and I saw the
malice lurking within them.
“How is Olivia?”
My eyebrows furrowed in confusion but my body was on high alert as soon as her name left
his lips.
“What have you done, Sal?” Mamma whispered as she raised her hand to her lips.
“Love makes us weak, boy. You will thank me one day,” he chuckled, and I lunged at him.
My blood boiling with a mix of fury and panic.
“WHAT HAVE YOU DONE TO HER?” I screamed in his face as he continued to laugh.
“Not what…who…” he gave me a bloody, toothy grin and I froze.
“Henry…” I breathed as his words hit me like a ton of bricks.
“I am sure they will be very happy together. He seems like a nice man. Fucking demented,
but who isn’t? Toni messed up the homeless man hit so royally that I realised I would have
to get rid of her myself. Luckily, Toni knew all about her past and tracking her stepbrother
down was pretty easy.”
All the colour drained from my face and my gut twisted so much I thought I was going to
throw up. It all made sense. I couldn’t find Henry because Sal already had him. He had been
under his protection.
Suddenly, my watch vibrated on my wrist as a red alert came in from Angelo’s watch. I
glanced up at mamma with pure panic written all over my face.
“Go! Now,” she shouted. Without a second thought, I raced from the room just as Max and
Cami arrived.
“Stay with mamma! Make sure that fucker dies!” I shouted as I sprinted past.
“Where are you going? Gio?” Max shouted, but I didn’t stick around to explain. As soon as I
got outside, I saw two of my SUVs on the driveway with my men waiting that had come
with Max.
“Keys!” I shouted at Nik who was hovering by the open door of the driver’s seat. He threw
them to me quickly before climbing into the passenger’s side as I started up the engine. I
pulled off the watch and threw it in Nik’s lap as I drove like a maniac out of the Leone
estate.
“Get the GPS off Angelo’s watch and put it in the satnav,” I ordered.
My hands gripped the steering wheel so hard; the whites of my knuckles were on show as I
tried to take deep breaths. The satnav was taking me to the middle of nowhere. To a road
that runs through the woods at the bottom of a rocky mountain. The darkness within was
rising to the surface as my mind ran wild with all the sick possibilities of what could
happen if I didn’t get there in time. I can’t let anything happen to her. I promised I would
protect her, and I would not fail her now. I slammed my foot on the accelerator as the car
revved down the empty roads towards the location. It was taking too long.
As the satnav informed me we were nearly there, my heart was in my throat when I saw
nothing but a desolate road and trees that stretched for miles. I slowed down as I scanned
the woodland for any sign of them.
“There!” Nik shouted, pointing half a mile down the road. As we came closer, anger took
over my senses when I saw a huge body on the side of the road. Pulling over, we leapt out
of the car and I gripped my hair when I saw Angelo’s dead body. The watch was still
flashing on his wrist. I growled and punched the door of the SUV when I realised that I had
no way of tracking Liv anymore.
“Boss! Look here. There are tyre marks on the road where he had taken off at speed.”
I jumped back in the car, winding down my window as I hung out of it to track the tyre
marks on the dirt road. After a few miles, they veered off into the woodland. Following
them as far as I could until we came to one of our own black cars we were using for the
wedding today, abandoned in the thick forest. I turned the engine off and climbed out.
There was no one insight and we would have to walk the rest of the way, but the adrenaline
coursing through my veins was keeping me focused.
Would I find her?
Without question.
Would I save her?
Always.
Would I kill him?
Abso-fucking-lutely.
Unhinged
Henry
She was even more beautiful than I remembered. Every night I had pictured her face
before I fell asleep but she had changed. She is a woman now. Striking. Perfect.
I stroked the soft skin of her sun-kissed arm with my knuckles as my eyes raked over her
body. Her tits had grown. And she had wider hips. I could tell from the figure-hugging dress
she was wearing. I knew seeing her again would make it all worth it. She knew I would find
her. She knows I can do anything.
The pin dropped the night I killed that boy. She wanted this. She wanted me to prove my
love to her before she would give herself to me fully. For two years, I thought she was just
stubborn. That she was just a fucking tease. And it made me livid. But then I realised. The
night she went to that party, she left me hints. A condom on the floor of her bedroom. That
barbie skank I fucked to get extra information about her told me Livvy was planning on
sleeping at her house that night. My girl wanted me to stop her. Everything she has done is
to try and make me prove myself to her. That I am good enough. That I will do whatever it
takes to be with her.
When they put me in that mental asylum full of nutters, I knew it was just another test
Livvy wanted me to pass. They try to stop me, but they can’t. Nothing will stop me. Those
therapists said I have an ‘antisocial personality disorder.’ That I am a sociopath. That is
what I allowed them to believe. I noticed in that place that most people have a weakness. A
conscience. They feel empathy towards others, especially people they believe to be
depressed or troubled. I let them believe I was one of those people. That they could help
me. But I didn’t need help. I am happy with who I am. That is why Livvy chose me. She
knew I could take care of her without feeling remorse for the things I had to do to keep her
safe.
She stirred in my arms on the cot bed of the warehouse I had been staying in this past
week. We had to stay here one more night and then that Sal bloke would fly us out of here
for good tomorrow.
Her stunning eyes blinked rapidly as she reached up to where she hit her head. The blood
had dried now and she would be fine. I made her better. Just by letting her sleep in my
arms.
“Shhh, just a little bump. You always were a fucking clumsy bitch,” I chuckled as her green
and gold eyes widened and she stared up at me. Her eyes were always my favourite thing
about her.
She jumped off the bed and away from me, putting her hands out as she scanned the room.
I frowned as I sat up on the bed and sighed. Looks like she wasn’t done testing me yet.
“Where are we, Henry? Why are you doing this? Why can’t you just leave me alone,” she
shouted as she ran to the door and started banging on it. There was no use. I had already
locked it.
“Don’t make me angry now, Livvy. I didn’t come all this way to argue with you. Come and sit
down,” I tried to remain calm, but the more she banged on that bloody door, the more
aggravated I was becoming.
“Olivia,” I warned.
Jumping to my feet, I grabbed her around the waist and threw her down on the bed,
straddling her hips as she hit me over and over with her tiny fists. This was just foreplay to
her. She knew what pleased me. She knew I liked this. I grabbed her arms and tied them to
the metal frame of the bed with some rope I had found in the warehouse a few days ago. I
thought it might come in handy.
“P-please! Please Henry, don’t do this! You don’t have to do this. You can let me go. I won’t
tell anyone. Just let me go,” she whimpered. The fake crocodile tears running down her
face. I grabbed her jaw in my hand, forcing her to look at me.
“Isn’t it enough yet, Livvy? When will it be enough?” I shouted.
“W-what? I d-don’t understand.”
I sighed deeply as I released her jaw and ran my hand over her hair, pushing it out of her
face.
“I knew I fell in love with you from the first day I saw you. I also knew that was what you
wanted too. You needed my love to ensure I didn’t crawl away from you. You spun me into
your web Livvy. You left me hanging. Watching. Tormenting me. You knew that I wouldn’t
want to leave you, even though it was hurting me. You were hurting me and you were
enjoying it.”
I leaned down and lifted a strand of her hair to my nose and breathed in that intoxicating
scent. “I can smell it on you now. The scent of seduction, lust and control. Every day you
tested me. Every day you knew what you were doing to me. It was all foreplay for you. For
us. A twisted game you created to make me prove my love for you. Have I not proven
myself, Livvy?”
She shook her head as her bottom lip trembled with emotion. “You had everyone fooled.
But I was not as stupid as them. I knew what you wanted. What you need. That’s why you
are with him, right? He is me. You thought I was gone. That they had won. So, you found
someone to replace me. But I’m here now. We can be together now.”
“No! Henry, you are not well. Please.”
Anger rose in me that she was still playing these games. “How can you still do this to me
Olivia? How can you force me to be this person? He didn’t get it. He didn’t know you like I
did.”
“Who?” she feigned confusion.
I scoffed. “Nate. I had to kill him for you. That was the first test, wasn't it? You are so lucky.
Lucky that I can crush those that stand in our way. But you know that, don’t you? That’s
why you continue to test me.”
“Henry… no. I never- “
“I knew. From the first time I saw you. I was in love with you. And you knew. But they didn’t
know, did they? That’s why they had to die. I get it now. That’s what you needed from me,
to show them that it's just us.”
A loud bang sounded from somewhere in the warehouse and my head snapped towards the
door.
“OLIVIA!” A loud male voice boomed.
“Gio!” Livvy shouted back and I slammed my hand over her mouth, putting my finger to my
lips. I peered down into her wide, beautiful eyes and I saw the answer. This was my final
test. Once I killed him, we could be together. She would be mine.
∞∞∞
Olivia
He is fucking unhinged! He has truly lost the plot. He is so much more dangerous now than
he ever was before. This isn’t just about his ego or possessiveness. I can see the craziness in
his eyes. He believes his own lies. He believes I want this. That I want him. There is no way
out.
I whimpered as he continued to stroke my hair and stare into my eyes as he spouted his
insanity. He was either going to kill me or keep my hostage forever. I know which one was
worse.
“OLIVIA!”
My heart flipped and relief flooded through every cell in my body when I heard his voice.
He’d found me.
“Gio!” I managed to shout just before Henry slammed his cold hand over my mouth. He
raised his finger to his lips as my muffled cries fell against his hand.
“Olivia!” Gio shouted again, his voice was deep and aggressive as he grew closer to our
hiding place. Henry grabbed a T-shirt and wrapped it around my head to stuff my mouth as
he stood up and started rummaging in a duffel bag. I watched in horror as he pulled out a
large knife and smiled at me with excitement.
I tried to scream but the fabric in my mouth restricted any noise from flooding the room as
Henry stalked over to the door and stood against the wall. I watched with wide eyes as
Henry winked at me and got in a fighting stance. Gunshots were suddenly fired at the lock
on the door and, in one powerful bang, Gio had kicked the door in. He saw me first lying on
the bed, my hands tied above my head and my mouth gagged as I tried to scream at him to
watch out. As soon as he stepped into the room towards me, Henry pounced forwards,
knife in the air ready to attack, but Gio sensed him coming and dodged out of the way at the
last minute.
All I could do was watch on in horror, my heart in my throat as Henry turned and sized Gio
up. The look on Giovanni’s face was one I had never seen before. He looked lethal. Henry
jumped forward, attempting to stab Gio once again, but Gio grabbed Henry’s outstretched
arm and dislocated his shoulder so forcefully, Henry fell to his knees crying out in pain. I
heard the pop that sent a shiver through my body as Gio let go and Henry held his shoulder
with his other hand, the knife clattering to the floor. Gio smirked as he grabbed a handful of
Henry’s hair and punched him so powerfully in the face that Henry fell back on the floor.
But Gio didn’t stop there. He kicked him in the stomach numerous times and then once in
the face, causing Henry’s body to twist on the filthy floor and blood to pour from his nose
and mouth.
“You are no match for me, you sick fuck,” Gio spat as he pulled out his gun and shot Henry
in one of his thighs. “So, you can’t run away.”
Nik came waltzing into the room and yanked Henry up as he screamed in pain, dragging
him out as Gio ran over to me, pulling the top from out my mouth as the tears were flooding
down my face. He got to work untying my hands as I whimpered and sobbed. As soon as my
hands were free, I sat up and flung myself into his arms. He held me so tightly against his
chest.
“Did he hurt you? It’s okay bambola. I’m here. He will never hurt you again. It’s over.”
“No. No, I thought I was going to- I thought I would never- “
“I know. I know. You’re safe now. I promise.” He lifted me up swiftly, cradling me in his
arms as he carried me out of the abandoned warehouse and to a car. I hid my face in his
chest when I heard Henry shouting my name from the car he had driven me here in.
“Stai zitto quel cazzo di bocca!” Gio shouted over to Nik. Suddenly, Henry’s shouts were
muffled and Gio placed me down in the front seat of a car.
“I will be right back,” he said softly when I gripped his arm tightly as he tried to walk away.
I nodded slowly as he stepped back and closed the door. I watched as he walked over to the
wedding car and opened the boot. Both Gio and Nik dragged Henry out and threw him into
the boot before slamming it shut. Gio said something to Nik before he walked back over to
the car and climbed into the driver's seat. He reached for my hand and squeezed it.
“What is going to happen to him? Where are you taking him?” I asked as he pulled out of
the woodland and back onto the main road.
“My yacht. I will deal with him later. First, I need you to be okay.”
I looked down at his hand on my lap and realised it was shaking. His whole body was
shaking. My heart ached as I realised how traumatic that was for me but also how it must
have been for him. He needs me just as much as I need him. This is how we worked. We
were each other’s lifeline.
“Pull the car over,” I ordered, wiping the dried tears away from my face.
“What?” He looked at me with utter confusion.
“Pull the car over. Now,” I said more sternly, and he swerved to the side of the road. I
opened the door and climbed out, walking to his side of the car as he slid out the driver’s
side.
“Liv- what are you- “
I jumped up into his arms, wrapping my own around his neck and my legs around his waist
as I held onto him like my life depended on it. His beautiful brown eyes widened as he held
me tightly and I lowered my head until our lips met. The passion, love and relief exploded
inside me as our lips parted against each other and I felt his tense body melt with mine. He
pushed me up against the car door as our kiss became frantic with emotion and his hands
explored my body as mine weaved through his hair. It was a kiss that could have lasted a
lifetime and I would have died happy. When we finally broke away out of breath, he rested
his forehead against mine and a single tear slid down his cheek.
“I was so scared, Liv. I thought I had lost you,” he whispered, and my heart felt like it was
being squeezed inside my chest.
“I know. But you didn’t. You saved me. Again,” I said, looking into his eyes. “You always save
me.”
“But you saved me first,” his voice choked as it filled with genuine emotion and I held his
gaze. “You saved me the day you walked into that interview.”
My smile grew as my eyes filled with fresh tears.
“I love you so much.”
“Ti amo bambola.”
Broken People Fix Each Other
Cecilia
As I stared into this monster’s eyes, I realised I never really knew Salvatore Buccini at all. I
knew he was ambitious. I knew he was dangerous. I knew he was possessive. But I also
believed he was loyal to his family. I believed that deep down, buried underneath the years
of darkness that had hardened him, there was the potential to be a good man. Never a great
man like Vinny but a man who put his love for his family above all else. Family first. That
was his and Vinny’s motto they created together. But it was a lie. A beautiful, deadly lie.
This man didn’t know love. He didn’t understand the meaning of it. If he did, he would
never have killed the only person who loved him. Tears threatened to form in my eyes as I
thought of the love of my life. The innocent man who had his life snatched away from him
by the man he respected the most in this world.
“Leave us,” I commanded in a fierce tone as Maximus turned to regard me with concern.
“But Cecil- “
“Leave us! Everyone out,” I ordered again as a slow smile spread across Sal’s face.
After a moment’s hesitation, Max nodded to Riccardo and the men left the room, closing the
door behind them. I walked over to a chair placed at the corner of the room and dragged it
until I would be sitting down facing Salvatore, only a metre away.
“Why?” I gritted through my teeth.
“Because I love you, Cecilia. You were-”
I didn’t need to hear any more about why he killed Vinny. My heart couldn’t handle it.
“No. Why get rid of Olivia? You say you love me and you want to marry me. You said that
you would have chosen me thirty years ago. Then why not allow Giovanni the same?”
He pouted his lips to run his tongue over his bloody teeth, his swollen eyelids blinking back
at me.
“Because he is my heir. Love will make him a pathetic boss. He will have a weakness. A
target for our enemies as long as she is alive.”
I shook my head as the fury grew within me. I felt like I was hanging off the edge of the
world, clinging onto the cliff with my fingernails before I surrendered to the fiery depths of
hell fire beneath me.
“So, if I had chosen you over Vinny, you would have been a pathetic boss?” I snarled.
He chuckled deeply, wheezing through the pain it caused him to do so. “No. Because I am
made of different stuff. If you had let me raise Giovanni as my own, then so would he.
Perhaps then he could keep his little slut.”
It was my turn to burst into laughter. “You are insane. Did you forget the results? You are
not his father! It is over Sal. You have lost everything. And Gio will find Olivia and save her.
He will marry her and love her the way a man is supposed to love a woman. He will be the
greatest boss this family has ever had. He will have everything you never did! And do you
know why? Because he has Vinny’s blood running through his veins!”
The pure evil and unfiltered rage that took over his features made me delighted. I knew
that would hit a nerve. Not break his heart because he doesn’t have a heart to break but at
least cause him pain.
“So, what’s the plan Cecilia? You are going to kill me?” He leaned back in his chair, his evil
eyes twinkling with amusement. “You don’t have it in you, my love.”
I narrowed my eyes as I thought of what would hurt him the most in this world. Because
death was too easy for him. He needs to feel the pain he has caused me. That he has caused
my children. Sani and Raya will grow up never knowing the wonderful father they should
have had. Elle will never have Vinny to walk her down the aisle on her wedding day.
Giovanni’s children will never feel their nonno’s love. I will never grow old with my soul
mate. Because of this man. Because he took it all away from us. The overwhelming despair
and fury invaded my mind and body like the black plague. Sweeping through me, killing any
form of happiness or hope I had left in this world.
“No. I am not going to kill you.”
His grin grew as his eyes searched mine. But when he saw something unsettling behind
them, his smile fell. “Cecilia…”
“You say you love me. That I am the only person you have ever loved. Everything you have
done up to this point has been for me, right?”
His lips parted as his breathing grew short and rapid.
“But you overlooked one major detail.”
His eyes narrowed as I reached for Riccardo’s gun on the table.
“That I would rather die than live in a world where I was loved by you.”
“Cecilia!” Panic gripped his tone as I lifted the gun and held it to my temple with a shaky
hand.
“Don’t you get it yet Salvatore?” I choked as I hovered my finger over the trigger, his frantic
eyes darting from my finger to my face and back. My face was wet from my silent tears.
“Everything you did; everything you are, will kill the very person you say you did it all for. I
would rather cease to exist than be loved by you.”
Suddenly, his eyes glazed over with a steel mist and his jaw clenched.
“Then kill yourself, Cecilia. I will be sure to follow you and torment you in the next life too. I
will never let you have peace. I will never let you go even in death. You will never be rid of
me!”
Letting the depth of despair and rage take control, I felt my hand turn the gun on
Salvatore’s head and my fingers squeezed the trigger. The sound of the gunshot rang in my
ears as I screamed. Suddenly, there were bodies in the room as I fell to my knees and
sobbed. The walls around me were caving in and my body was shrinking. Blood was
everywhere. Bright like the roses in my garden. It was rushing towards me like a tide,
coming for me. Drowning me. I could hear my name being called in the distance and my
body was moving with the current. I wasn’t in control. I could fight to survive or I could let
it take me.
“It’s okay Cecilia. You’re okay,” the deep voice soothed from the sky.
“Vinny?” I whispered, blinking my eyes but all I could see were the rolling ruby waves
overhead before they engulfed me completely.
∞∞∞
Olivia
Gio walked out of Cecilia’s bedroom looking forlorn and exhausted. I stopped my pacing
and stepped towards him, touching his arm.
“How is she?”
“Still staring at a blank wall and refusing to talk. I found her empty pill bottles in her desk
drawer. She must have been off them for days. The doctors are on their way, but I don’t
know what to do. I don’t want them to take her without her consent, but I am worried she
is suicidal again,” he huffed, his eyes full of pain and worry.
“I am not sure what went down before she shot Sal but when I raced in, she was in a bad
way. She was calling me Vinny as I carried her out,” Max shook his head and puffed out his
cheeks.
“What do you expect? She killed Salvatore after finding out that he killed papi to be with
her. That is enough to break anyone. And she hasn’t been on her meds! How didn’t we see
it?” Elle grunted as she leaned against the wall in the corridor.
“There has been a lot going on, Elle. And we haven’t been around her for days. How were
we supposed to know?” Gio’s tone was defensive, and I started biting my nails. That wasn’t
entirely true. There had been signs that she was struggling but Gio was right. With
everything else going on, we had failed to see it as more than her hate for Sal.
“Can I try?” I asked quietly as I looked between the siblings. Elle shrugged and folded her
arms across her chest while Gio glanced down at me, unsure.
“I don’t think it will be of any use, Liv. She needs professional help right now,” he groaned.
“Then there is no harm in trying,” I stroked his arm before standing on my tiptoes to kiss
his cheek.
The curtains were drawn, and the only light was coming from a bedside lamp on Cecilia’s
table. The frail outline of her body was curled up in a foetal position under the satin bed
cover. As I approached the side of the bed she was facing out from, my heart ached when I
saw the face of a broken woman. Pale and expressionless. Her brown eyes were staring
straight ahead at the cream bedroom wall, unblinking.
I sat down in the plush armchair next to her side and looked down at my hands in my lap. I
didn’t speak. I knew just having company after such a traumatic event was sometimes all
you needed.
After what felt like eternity, my head snapped up when I heard her quiet voice.
“I would have done it.”
My eyebrows furrowed as I stared at her. She continued to fix her gaze on the wall ahead.
“Done what Cecilia?” I asked softly.
“Shot myself. If I believed he truly loved me in those final moments, I would have done it.”
I swallowed my shock and instant concern at her words. She was going to kill herself in
front of Salvatore.
“But he didn’t love me. Because you would die for those you love not let them take their
own life. Vinny died trying to save me. Sal told me to kill myself.”
I leaned back in the chair as tears sprang to my eyes.
“Why were you going to do it Cecilia?”
“Because I thought it would hurt him. If everything he did was for me, then losing me would
be the worst thing to happen. But even that wasn’t enough. Vinny died because of me. My
children don’t have their papi. You were nearly taken by your stepbrother. All because of
me.”
A large tear rolled down her cheek to the tip of her nose and dropped to the bed.
“No. You are wrong.” I sighed deeply as my inner demons came to the surface. “I used to
think it was my fault. That Henry tormented me. That Nate died. That my mum couldn’t
even look me in the eye after it happened. That Henry killed an innocent warden and God
knows who else to find me. I always thought it was because of something I had done. That I
was the reason all of this was happening. But I know now, it wasn’t me. It was him.
Everything he did; every decision he made was because of his own unhealthy obsession. It
was nothing to do with me really. If it wasn’t me, it would have been somebody else. I
believe that now. I can see that now. And it is the same for you Cecilia. Salvatore made you
believe everything he did was for you but how can it be when you didn’t ask for any of it?
When not once did you give him the impression you wanted him? You are a victim, Cecilia.
You are not the cause.”
Her bottom lip trembled and more tears fell from her eyes. “But how can I go on? How can I
live with the knowledge that Vinny’s death was because of Salvatore’s obsession with me?
How can I live knowing I nearly married the man who took him away from me? I don’t
deserve to.”
I jumped up from the chair and lay behind her in the bed, throwing my arms around her as
she started to sob uncontrollably.
“You will live because he doesn’t get to win. You will live because you are strong and you
are loved. Salvatore is gone and you are still here. That happened for a reason. Vinny was
always protecting you. You can still feel him, right?”
She nodded her head as I stroked her hair away from her face.
“Listen to him. What is he saying?”
Her lips pursed together as she closed her eyes. “Angel be strong. Fight.”
I smiled as the tears ran down my face too. “That’s right. You have so much to live for. You
have so much to take Vinny along for. He wants to see it all with you Cecilia. You must live
for the both of you.”
She turned in my arms to face me.
“I need help Olivia. Please help me get better.”
“Always. Broken people fix each other. One day at a time.”
She nodded slowly. “One day at a time.”
Him and I
Giovanni
“È a bordo. Lo yacht è pronto per partire (He is onboard. The yacht is ready to go),” Nik
informed me as I watched the car drive away with mamma and Elle inside. I released a
calming breath knowing she was going to get help. She had agreed to go back to the rehab
clinic after her chat with Olivia. Once again, this woman was saving my life. How she got
mamma to even speak is beyond me.
Today has been a fucking day. But it wasn’t over yet. There was one last loose end to tie up.
I nodded to Nik in appreciation as Liv looked up at me from under my arm.
“What did he say?”
Turning towards her, wrapping my arms around her waist, I held her gaze carefully.
“I have to go and deal with Henry now,” I tried to keep the aggression out of my tone at
even saying that bastard’s name.
She swallowed her sudden nerves and fear as her green and gold eyes danced with
emotion. She nodded slowly.
“I want to come with you.”
I inhaled sharply. I wasn't sure that was such a good idea. No, I knew that was a terrible
idea. Because what I had in mind to do to that asshole, I didn’t want her to see that side of
me. She thought she knew what I was capable of, but really, she had no idea. Not when it
came to people who hurt her.
“I don’t want to watch,” she quickly added when she saw my uncertainty. “I just need
closure. And I need to be in the same place as you. I need to be with you,” she whispered, a
slight blush forming on her cheeks in her unexpected shyness.
My heart fluttered in my chest. She was so fucking adorable. Knowing how much this
woman hated to rely on and need others, those words meant a lot. She was admitting for
the first time that she needed me. Not just to protect her, but to be there for her.
“Okay bambola. You don’t get seasick?” I raised an eyebrow and a small smile pulled at her
lips as she shook her head. “Then let’s go.”
I turned to Nik, who nodded and climbed into the driver's seat of my Rolls Royce as I held
the door open for Liv to climb in. We drove to the harbour in silence, holding hands the
whole way. I didn’t know what would be running through Olivia’s head right now, but from
the calm and serene look on her face, I knew she was okay. It was nearly over. Henry was
about to pay for everything he did to her and she would be free of him, once and for all. And
I would make sure they never found his body.
Normally, when I know I am about to torture and kill a man, I have to shut off my mind and
my emotions and retreat to a dark place. Block out the reasoning and moral compass
within me. But this time, I didn’t have to do that. I wanted to feel everything. I wanted him
to look me in the eyes and see me. Not Giovanni, the ruthless mafioso, and not Gio, the
protective family man. But me. I was both. I was who she chose. I was who she wanted and I
was the one who would love her for the rest of my life. I wanted him to know who I was to
her and who he will never be.
As we walked onboard the luxury superyacht with immaculate and high-tech designs and
interior, I squeezed Liv’s hand in support. She held her chin up higher with a determined
expression which made my heart soar. I was in awe of her strength, facing her abuser and
tormentor for the last time.
I led her down to the lowest level of the yacht where I knew my men would have detained
Henry and stopped outside the door to the room.
“You are sure?” I asked quietly. Her stunning eyes flickered up to mine and she nodded
with conviction.
“Yes.”
I opened the door and we stepped inside the lavishly decorated room. In the middle, tied to
a chair, was Henry. His head hung to his chest, dirty blonde hair hanging down covering his
face. Wearing ripped black jeans and a black T-shirt, I could see that he was in shape but
nowhere near the size of me. He lifted his head when he heard us arrive and his eyes locked
with Liv’s, which made rage erupt through me like an electric current. I hated the way he
looked at her. Full of desire and possession.
“Livvy,” he breathed. I couldn’t contain the fury in me as I stepped forward and punched
him in the nose, breaking it as he groaned.
“Say her name again and I will keep breaking more parts of your body,” I hissed, grabbing
his jaw in my hand. I felt a small hand on my shoulder as Liv stepped forwards and I
dropped his bloody face and looked down at her by my side. She was staring at him with a
clenched jaw and fire in her eyes.
“I feel sorry for you, Henry. That you will never understand. I am not going to stand here
and tell you all the ways you hurt me or try to make you understand all the pain you caused
because you will never admit guilt. You will never show remorse. And I don’t need that
from you. Look at me,” she said, stepping closer to him.
I instinctively wanted to pull her back, to shield her with my body from his sleazy, sadistic
gaze, but I fought it with every fibre of my being. She needed to do this her way.
“You didn’t break me. I didn’t just survive you Henry, I fucking flourished. I found love. I
found family. I found happiness. So, I have to thank you. Because if it wasn’t for you, I
wouldn’t be where I am today.”
A guttural growl escaped his throat as his icy blue eyes shimmered with hate and anger and
I smirked behind my strong girl.
“Once I walk out that door, I will take a deep breath, never think of you again and start a
new chapter in my life. And you…will be left in the hands of the man I love. The man I chose
in every lifetime and the next. Goodbye Henry.”
She turned on her heels, grabbed me by the back of the neck and smashed her lips against
mine. I wrapped my arms around her back as I lifted her from the floor and kissed her back.
“You fucking slut! You’re a pathetic whore who no one loves! He will grow sick of your shit
one day, Livvy! Only I know what you need!”
My body tensed at his words as I slowly lowered her to the ground. She held my face
between her hands as she smiled up at me, ignoring his words completely, before she
walked out of the room without looking back.
“Liv! Olivia!” He screamed in rage after her as I fixed my deadly gaze on him and welcomed
my darkness.
“You believe you are what she needs?” I said calmly as I walked over to the polished oak
dining table that showcased an array of my torture devices, guns and knives.
“I know I am, and she does too! This is all a sick game to her and you are just another fool
she has taken along for the ride,” he spat.
I chuckled deeply as I picked up a black dagger that my men had found in his belongings.
“Oh and what a ride it is!”
His eyes blazed with jealousy as he glared at me from his position. Twisting the sharp point
against my fingertip, I looked up at Nik, who was standing behind Henry.
“Pop his shoulder back in and cut him loose,” I demanded. Henry’s brows tightened in
confusion when Nik bent down and roughly sorted his dislocated shoulder before cutting
the cable ties around his wrists and ankles, freeing him from the chair. He jumped up,
stumbling on his wounded leg, rubbing his shoulder as he looked frantically between me
and Nik.
“Nice dagger,” I held it up in front of my face as his eyes narrowed. “Just like the one you
used to stab Nate in the back, right?”
A vindictive smirk stretched across his face, pulling his lips away from his teeth. “Nearly
identical.”
I nodded as I stabbed the knife powerfully into the oak table and let go, the blade warping
and swaying until it stilled.
“I’ll make a deal with you, Henry.”
His eyes flickered between Nik and I suspiciously as his jaw ticked.
“If you want to truly prove to Liv that you are the man she needs, then you need to stop
being a fucking coward,” I smirked as I started to undo the buttons of my black shirt.
“Coward? Do you know how many people I have killed for her?” He snapped and I raised
my eyebrows.
“But how many of those people did you give a fair chance to defend themselves? You see
Henry. Liv wants a real man. One who fights for her. So, my proposal is this…fight me. Face
to face.”
He ran his tongue over his teeth as he contemplated my words. I smirked when I saw a
flicker of uncertainty.
“What’s wrong? Can you only kill a man when they are unprepared? Anyone can stab
someone in the back, Henry. But to look a man in the eyes as life drains out of them…that is
what real men are made of.”
I couldn’t contain my delight as my provoking words had the desired effect. He stood up
taller and ran his hand through his long blonde hair as he glared at me with so much hate.
“I will even allow you to have your precious dagger, seeing as you have a wounded leg,” I
pulled it out of the table and threw it on the carpet between us.
“There are two of you. How is that fair?” He growled, looking over at Nik who was standing
like a wall of muscle in the corner of the room.
“Nik will not move. This is between you and I.”
“And if I kill you? He will kill me!” Henry shouted and I shook my head.
“If you kill me… You will walk out of here a free man,” I held his gaze. He had the widest
smile on his face as he swiftly bent down and grabbed the dagger in his hand. Seems he still
wasn’t brave enough to actually take me on in a fair fight, but it didn’t faze me. I would still
beat his ass to an inch of his life.
I pulled off my shirt. It was Prada and one of my favourites. I didn’t want his blood ruining
it. I stepped towards him menacingly and he moved quickly, side stepping away from me. I
smirked as I stood still, raising my fists and beckoning him forwards with my fingers.
His nostrils flared and he dived at me, attempting to stab me in the stomach with the knife,
but I dodged out the way easily. We circled each other once again.
I pretended to dive forward, causing him to flinch and I laughed loudly. His eyes blazed
with anger at my trick and I saw something in him change. He wanted me dead. He was
going to go for it now and I couldn’t fucking wait. The adrenaline ramped up as our eyes
locked and gone were the jokes. Now it was time to stop messing about. Now it was time to
show this fucker exactly who he was dealing with.
When he came at me again, I grabbed his arm holding the dagger up in the air, and landed a
powerful punch to his stomach, causing him to bend over before kneeing him in the face
and pushing him away. He fell back on the floor but quickly scrambled to his feet again as
he glared at me, puffing his cheeks with rapid breaths.
“Come on Henry. I expected so much more from you,” I sneered as he roared, flying towards
me and jabbing the dagger towards my chest. I knocked his arm away, but he swiftly
punched me in the face with his other fist and I was surprised that it caused my lip to bleed.
Not bad.
I turned and punched him square in the jaw, causing his body to turn to the side. Before I
could move out of the way, he flung his arm back and the blade sliced through the skin on
my hip. I hissed as I slammed my hand over it and stumbled back to quickly assess the
wound. It was only a surface cut, but it was enough to allow my rage to take control. Flying
towards him, I knocked him to the floor and grabbed his wrist that held the knife. With all
my strength fighting against his, I took the blade to his throat as he gritted through his
teeth, his body shaking to battle my strength as the blade pressed against his skin. A trickle
of blood started to run down his neck, but I didn’t want it to be over yet. He hadn’t suffered
anywhere near enough. I pulled the blade away and was pummelling his face with one fist
while slamming his arm down on the floor with the other. The blade fell from his hand, and
I slid it away from us. He punched me in the stomach and then the jaw in my moment of
distraction and I fell to the side of him. Just as he was about to climb on top of me, I booted
him hard in the stomach with my foot, causing him to fly back into the wall. Leaping to my
feet, I beat every inch of his body, blow after blow, until he fell to his knees on the floor,
blood covering us both.
“GET UP!” I bellowed aggressively, but his eyelids drooped, and his head rolled. I grabbed
his hair and pulled him up to his feet just to send him back to the floor with my fist.
He groaned and spluttered through the blood pooling in his mouth, and I knew he couldn’t
fight any more. I stepped back and nodded to Nik as I wiped the blood from my mouth with
the back of my hand. Nik threw Henry back onto the chair as I walked over to the table and
grabbed a sharp knife. Nik dragged the chair over to the table with Henry on it and placed
his arm on the surface. His chin was resting on his chest, barely conscious. This should
wake him up.
I cut off his finger. His head fell back as he screamed in agony, but it did nothing to appease
the beast within. I was only just getting started. I then cut two more off.
“Now you are awake, let’s talk. How many times would you roughly say you have called
Olivia a slut? Whore? Bitch?”
He mumbled something incoherent, and I sighed. Using the knife in my hand, I grabbed the
collar of his T-shirt and cut it off his chest. I slowly sliced his skin with the knife repeatedly.
Small cuts for every demeaning word he had ever said to her until his body was a mass of
slits and blood. I stepped back to admire my work as he squirmed against Nik’s tight grip in
the chair, screaming and crying for mercy. I grabbed his tongue and cut half of it off.
“How many times did you stab that boy in the back, Henry?” I asked coldly as I placed the
smaller knife down and picked up a sharp, thin blade. When he didn’t answer me, I grabbed
his hair on top of his head and forced him to look at me. “How many times? Use your
hands.”
“S-se,” he mumbled, unable to talk through the blood and half a tongue in his mouth as I
dropped his head back. I held up his hands and counted the remaining seven fingers I had
purposefully left. I stabbed the blade into his shoulder and his harrowing scream echoed
around the room. I repeated my action six more times in different areas of his body, being
sure to miss any vital organs to keep him alive a little longer.
Tears were rolling down his face and his skin had paled from the loss of blood, but he was
just about hanging onto his reality.
Next, I picked up the baseball bat. Feeling nothing as I stared at the blubbering mess of a
man, I savagely beat his arms, breaking every bone in them and then shattered his knee
caps. He lost consciousness through the pain and I threw the bat to the floor. Glancing up at
Nik, who stood up from restricting Henry’s thrashing as he was no longer needed, I said,
“It’s time.”
He nodded and lifted Henry’s battered, bloody body over his shoulder and we walked up to
the back deck of the yacht. The moon was hanging low in the sky, illuminating the inky,
black surface of the water that stretched as far as the eye could see. My driver had brought
us out to the middle of the Mediterranean Sea so there would be no witnesses or chance of
anyone finding his body before the fish had their fill.
Two of my soldiers had already prepared the cement blocks on the floor as Nik threw
Henry’s body down on a deck chair and the men pulled his shoes off. They strapped his feet
to the top of the blocks and a cement weight was tied around his neck tightly as Henry
groaned, waking from his little nap.
His eyes flickered open and closed as he tried to comprehend what was happening.
“I will be sure to make Olivia very happy for the rest of my life. Thank you for sending her
to me Henry.” I smiled as I stepped back and nodded to my men, who dragged him to the
edge of the deck.
“No!” He panicked as he realised what was about to happen. I stared into his eyes and saw
the fear of death in them as I nodded once more and they threw him overboard.
I closed my eyes as the adrenaline and satisfaction reached its peak. Turning on my feet, I
walked briskly inside and headed to the bathroom to wash off all of Henry’s blood before
Olivia saw me for the monster I am.
∞∞∞
Olivia
I heard the splash. Scrambling up off the lounge sofa and running to the balcony, I looked
over and saw three of Gio’s men hovering at the end of the yacht, looking down into the
black water and I knew. Henry was gone. Forever.
Relief and an overwhelming feeling of freedom washed over me as my hands started to
shake and I blinked back the tears. I was finally free.
A movement below the balcony caught my attention and I just managed to catch a glimpse
of Gio’s black hair and shirtless, bloody body walking back inside. I turned and raced
through the lounge and out into the extravagant lobby to the staircase. Was he hurt? Was
he okay?
I frantically flew down the stairs to the ground floor and searched for him in every room.
When I flung open the door to a small bathroom, I froze.
There was Giovanni, shirtless and leaning over a sink. His beautiful face, his toned chest, his
muscular arms and his deadly hands; all covered in blood. My heart pounded in my chest as
my first thought was that it was his. That he was hurt. But as his head turned and I locked
eyes with his gorgeous mountain brown irises, I knew he was fine. It wasn’t his blood.
It should have scared me. It should have made me feel physically sick. But as we held each
other’s gaze, his chest rising and falling with shallow breaths, all I felt was overwhelming
need, desire and love. This was the true Giovanni in all his fucked-up glory, and I was here
for it. For him.
“Liv…” his deep voice was laced with worry at me finding him like this and I knew I had to
make him see. I accepted him in every form. I ran at him, jumping into his arms. Our lips
connected and everything in me came alive with electricity. He was my addiction. He was
everything. His callous hands clawed at my dress, ripping it off over my head as I wrapped
my legs around his waist, and he slammed my back against the bathroom door. Our tongues
were frantically fighting for more as our kiss became crazed and my hands gripped his hair
aggressively. I felt him rip my knickers in half and skilfully undo his flies without breaking
the passionate kiss. As soon as he pushed himself into me, I gasped into his mouth, digging
my nails into his shoulders as he started to move in and out, massaging every inch of me
with his length. His dark eyes burned into mine as our foreheads touched and his thrusts
became more possessive and demanding as he squeezed my ass in his hands.
I was crying out his name within minutes as he growled out his orgasm. Without saying a
word or putting me down, he walked us over to the shower, his dick still inside me and
turned on the scalding water. As he submerged us under the downfall, all the blood
washing away from our bodies as it ran down the drain, he kissed me again. Slow and
sweet. Loving.
“It’s over bambola. And now they will all know.”
I stared down into his eyes as he looked up at me with admiration and love.
“Know what?” I whispered.
“That Giovanni Buccini in love is as deadly as they come.”
I claimed his lips once again as we got lost in each other for the second time. But this time,
it was a promise. A promise to a new beginning. A promise of a life as one. Just him and I.
So Much Better
Olivia
Two months later……
“I can’t believe that you have never tried a Maraschino! You live in Italy Liv, it’s criminal!”
Gigi laughed at me as I took a sip of her cherry-flavoured cocktail and winced at the
sweetness.
“Hmm too sweet for me. I think I’ll stick to the Godfather,” I smirked, stirring my own
cocktail with the straw.
“I bet you will,” she winked and giggled. After some serious discussions, Giovanni allowed
me to tell Giulia and Millie who he really was. They had to sign an oath and I had to ensure
they really knew how serious it was that they didn’t gossip around town, but I trusted them
both entirely. It felt so nice to have friends that I could speak to about my life now. I had
Cami and Elle of course but they were born into this life, and I was still adjusting and
learning the ropes.
“How is Cecilia doing?” Gigi asked as I leaned back in my chair, basking in the last of the
afternoon sunlight from the quaint courtyard bar in the Piazza.
“Better. She is home now and taking everything a day at a time. She is spending all her time
with Sani and Raya around the house which is so nice to see.”
“Glad to hear it. That woman deserves some peace,” she sighed and I nodded my head.
“So how is Viking?” I wriggled my eyebrows and she huffed loudly.
“Back in Oz. But we have arranged for me to fly out for a trip in a couple of weeks’ time, so
we’ll see. Talking of trips.” She sat up straight in her chair and peered over my shoulder. “I
think there is someone here who has come to visit,” she grinned.
I turned in my chair and my eyes widened when I saw the bouncing brown hair and
beaming face of my beautiful best friend jogging towards us.
“Millie!” I screamed in disbelief as I flung myself out of the chair and charged towards her.
We crashed into each other and laughed when we banged heads. She squeezed me so
tightly as the tears of happiness flowed down my cheeks. We had spoken nearly every day
since Henry’s death and after Gio agreed to let me tell her what had happened and who he
was, she had been saying she would come and visit as soon as she could get time off work.
But this was still a surprise.
“Oh my god! What are you doing here? Is this real? How are you here?” I mumbled through
my shock and giddiness. She chuckled as she pulled out of my embrace and looked at me.
“Well, your boyfriend is a pretty demanding man and when he sends you a private jet with
the order to get on it for an all-expenses paid trip to Italy to come and see your best friend,
how can you say no?”
My eyes bulged and my heart fluttered. “Gio did this?”
She nodded. “He is pretty special, Liv.”
I smiled as I wiped my tears away and suddenly realised I had not introduced Gigi.
Grabbing Millie’s hand, I pulled her over to our table as Gigi stood up and grabbed Millie
into a bear hug.
“Thank you for looking out for my bestie Giulia,” Millie smiled as Gigi released her.
“Oh, it’s been super easy! No drama at all,” Gigi replied sarcastically causing the three of us
to all burst into laughter.
After a few more cocktails, Gigi excused herself to give Millie and I time alone. We chatted
and laughed for hours as if no time had passed until the sun had set and the cool evening
breeze made us chilly.
Millie reached for my hand suddenly, a loving but serious expression on her pretty face. “I
am so happy for you Liv. And proud of you. You are just glowing.”
I smiled back, my eyes flicking down to our entwined hands on the table. “I have never been
so happy Mills. I just wish you were here all the time. Then my life would be complete,” I
chuckled.
“Well, who knows! You may convince me to stay!”
“Really? Why didn’t you say? I can show you all the best places and make you fall in love
with Verona!”
“Great! Let’s start now. Take me to your favourite place in the city,” her eyes sparkled with
excitement, and I felt a bubble of happiness fizzle inside me.
“Ok but you must promise you won’t laugh. It holds a special place in my heart now and
even though it may be a tourist attraction, I love it.”
“You had me at ‘don’t laugh’,” she beamed, and I rolled my eyes.
We left the bar with two of Giovanni’s men following us behind protectively. Millie kept
looking back at them, a little unsure but I just squeezed her hand.
“Just ignore them. You soon forget they’re there.”
As we approached Casa di Giulietta, I started to tell Millie all about the day I first came here
with Gio and how I thought he was the sexiest, most infuriating man I had ever met. I was
mid-sentence when we reached the arched alleyway and the sight before me stopped me in
my tracks. The path was decorated with candles all the way through it and rose petals
covered the cobbled floor.
“What the- “I paused and pulled Millie back. “Someone is obviously in there Mills. We better
not go in.”
Millie ignored me and stepped into the empty archway and shrugged. “There’s no one
there. Oh Liv, come and see how beautiful this is. No wonder you love this place,” she said
as she continued to walk through. I quickly caught up with her, my eyes wide at the sheer
beauty and romantic ambience that had been created by all the candlelight and flowers
against the graffiti of lovers' names on the walls. When we reached the empty courtyard,
there was a stone stand in the middle with a bottle of champagne and a rolled-up piece of
paper.
“Millie, I really think we should go. Someone has obviously hired this out for a romantic
evening.”
Once again Millie ignored me and walked over to the letter that was tied up with a silk
ribbon. She glanced up at me with a smile as she lifted it.
“This has your name on it.”
My eyebrows furrowed as I briskly walked over and took it from her.
Olivia
It was handwritten on the side of the scroll. “What?”
“Open it,” she said with a devilish grin and I suddenly realised that she knew something I
didn’t. With a trembling hand, I unravelled the paper to reveal a handwritten letter.
Dear Juliet,
I am writing to you to tell you about a girl. A girl who has changed my life.
Before her, there was an emptiness in my heart. It consumed me and at times, the
entire world was overcast with subtle shades of grey and black. A never-ending
winter. But then she fell (quite literally) into my life bringing vibrant colours,
sunflowers and warmth. And my heart was renewed. I suddenly had hope and light in
my life because of her smile. Because of her eyes. Because of her laughter. I live for
them. I am in awe of her. Of the quiet strength she possesses. Of the gentle care she
has for others. Of the way she knows her own mind with such certainty.
I never saw it coming. I don’t know how, or when it happened but I fell madly in love
with her. A love so unexpected yet so simple. There is no longer her and I. There is
only us.
But I have a confession. I once saw love as a weakness that could only ever end in
one’s demise. I told her that love always ends in tragedy. I was wrong (Don’t tell her-
I will never hear the end of it).
When defending you, she once asked me, ‘What is the point of living if you aren’t
really living at all?’ I understand it now. Life is not worth living without love. Love
for your family. Love for your friends. Love for the world we are each apart of. She
taught me that. And in return, I promise to love her for the rest of my life, if she will
have me.
So, Juliet, you may never have had your happy ever after, but I know that I will. All
because I met a girl. A girl who changed my life and stole my heart.
Forever grateful,
Giovanni Buccini
I glanced up as the tears fell from my eyes and my hand slammed over my mouth when I
saw Giovanni walking towards me looking extremely handsome in his casual jeans and T-
shirt that clung to his muscles. This was my favourite version of him and he knew it.
My mind was whirling and the intense love I felt as he stopped to give Millie a hug before
walking over to me made me swoon. But then he did something I was completely
unprepared for. He took my left hand and got down on one knee. He held out a black velvet
box and opened it to reveal the most exquisite diamond ring I had ever seen.
I gasped and Millie squealed behind him.
“Bambola, will you marry me and let me love you for the rest of our lives?”
A huge sob escaped my lips as I had never felt happiness like it. I dived into his arms,
wrapping mine around his neck as I sobbed with so much joy.
“Is that a yes?” he chuckled, as he tried to pull me back to look at me. I laughed loudly as I
wiped my eyes and peered into his.
“Si, si, si!”
He laughed, his dimple in his cheek making my stomach flip and Millie screamed behind us.
I couldn’t stop giggling as he placed the stunning ring on my finger.
“I knew you were a soppy romantic at heart,” I chuckled, remembering how he had teased
me months ago about loving this place.
“Only for you,” he smiled before he held my face in his hand and kissed me.
Our love story may have not be a fairy-tale romance but what we found was so much
better. We found ourselves in each other.
Coming soon…
Tempting
My Mafia Princess
If you loved Tempting My Mafia Boss, come and join Elenora
Buccini as she embarks on a journey of self-discovery,
dangerous liaisons and most importantly her own mission to
find true love.
@aurawrites31
Face.book.com/AuthorAurawrites
About The Author
Aura Rose grew up in England and started writing fiction during the covid pandemic in
2020. She lives with her husband and daughter and is a true romantic at heart. She has
written a trilogy of supernatural e-books on dreame app. Her first book, The Last Alpha,
just came 3rd place in Stary III Writing competition and its sequel, Dark Love placed in the
top five books on the app as voted for by readers in the ACE competition. Tempting My
Mafia Boss is her first published book on Amazon. It is also available as an e-book on Kindle
Unlimited.
If you enjoyed her work and would like to stay up to date with new content and projects,
you can find her on social media.
@aurawrites31
Facebook.com/AuthorAurawritesReadersPage